The world
grew silent, as if becalmed in the eye of a storm. Beneath the moon a pillar
grew until all the east was aflame. A flower formed at the top. The trunk
bifurcated. The flower became a head. . .
"Gods!"
a nearby sentry muttered.
Its horns
seemed to scrape the moon as it turned slowly, glaring into the west. It was
laughing silently ...
Brago
pulled the queen against his side. "Come," he said. "This may be
the last time either of us gives ourselves freely!"
Berkley
books by Glen Cook
DREAD
EMPIRE SERIES
a shadow of all night falling
october's baby
Glen Cook
BERKLEY
BOOKS, NEW YORK
OCTOBER'S
BABY
A Berkley
Book / published by arrangement with the author
PRINTING HISTORY
Berkley
edition / March 1980 Second printing / January 1984
All
rights reserved.
Copyright
© 1980 by Glen Cook.
Frontispiece
map copyright © 1980 by Glen Cook.
Cover
illustration by Kinuko Y. Craft.
This book
may not be reproduced in whole or in part,
by
mimeograph or any other means, without permission.
For
information address: The Berkley Publishing Group,
200
Madison Avenue, New York, New York 10016.
ISBN:
0-425-06538-3
A BERKLEY
BOOK « TM 757,375 Berkley Books are published by The Berkley Publishing Group, 200 Madison
Avenue, New York, New York 10016.
The name
"BERKLEY" and the stylized "B" with design are trademarks
belonging to Berkley Publishing Corporation.
PRINTED
IN THE UNITED STATES OF AMERICA
CONTENTS
ONE: The
Years 994-995 After the Founding of the Empire of Ilkazar; Unto Us A Child Is
Born 1
TWO: Year
1002 AFE; The Hearth and the Heart 13
THREE:
Year 1002 AFE; The Long, Mailed Reach of the Disciple 28
FOUR:
Year 1002 AFE; The Narrowing Way 46
FIVE: The
Years 995-1001 AFE; Their Wickedness
Spans the Earth 63
SIX: Year
1002 AFE; The Mercenaries 81
SEVEN:
Year 1002 AFE; Into Kavelin
95
EIGHT:
Year 1002 AFE; Campaign Against Rebellion 111
NINE:
Year 1002 AFE; Family Life 134
TEN: Year
1002 AFE; The Closing Circles 147
ELEVEN:
Year 1002 AFE; Closing Tighter 1 67
TWELVE:
The Years 1002-1003 AFE; Complications and New Directions 187
THIRTEEN:
The Years 1001-1003 AFE; In Their Wickedness They Are Blind, in Their Folly
They Persist 198
FOURTEEN:
Year 1003 AFE; The Roads to Baxendala 211
FIFTEEN:
Year 1003 AFE; Baxendala 225
SIXTEEN:
The Years 1003-1004 AFE; Shadows of Death 245
ONE: Unto Us A Child Is Born
I) He made the darkness his covering around him
Like a
whispering ghost the winged man dropped from the moonless winter night, a
shadow on the stars whose wings fluttered with a brief sharp crack as he broke
his fall and settled onto the sill of a high glassless tower window of Castle
Krief. H is great wings he folded about him like a dark living cloak, with
hardly a sigh of motion. His eyes burned cold scarlet as he studied the
blackness within the tower. He turned his terrier-like head from side to side,
listening. Neither sight nor sound came to him. He did not want to believe it.
It meant he must go on. Cautiously, fearfully—human places inspired dread—he
dropped to the cold interior floor.
The
darkness within, impenetrable even to his night seeing eyes, was food for his
man-fear. What human evil might wait there, wearing a cloak of night? Yet he
mustered courage and went on, one weak hand always touching the crystal dagger
at his hip, the other caressing his tiny purse. Inaudible terror whimpered in
his throat. He was not a courageous creature, would not be in this fell place
but for the dread-love he bore his Master.
Guided by
whimper-echoes only he could hear, he
found the door he sought. Fear, which had faded as he
found all as peaceful as the Master had promised, returned. A warding spell
blocked his advance, one that could raise a grand haroo and bring steel-armed
humans.
But he
was not without resources. His visit was the spear thrust of an operation
backed by careful preparation. From his purse he took a crimson jewel, chucked
it up the corridor. It clattered. He gasped. The noise seemed thunderous. Came
a flash of brilliant red light. The ward-spell twisted away into some plane at
right angles to reality. He peeked between the long bony fingers covering his
eyes. All right. He went to the door, opened it soundlessly.
A single
candle, grown short with time, burned within. Across the room, in a vast
four-poster with silken hangings, slept the object of his mission. She was
young, fair, delicate, but these traits held no meaning. He was a sexless
creature. He suffered no human longings—at least of the carnal sort. He did
long for the security of his cavern home, for the companionship of his
brothers. To him this creature was an object (of fear, of his quest, of pity),
a vessel to be used.
The woman
(hardly more than a child was she, just gaining the graceful curves of the
woman-to-be) stirred, muttered. The winged man's heart jumped. He knew the
power of dreams. Hastily, he dipped into his purse for a skin-wrapped ball of
moist cotton. He let her breathe its vapors till she settled into untroubled
sleep.
Satisfied,
he drew the bedclothes down, eased her night garments up. From his pouch he
withdrew his final treasure. There were spells on the device, that kept its
contents viable, which would guarantee this night's work's success.
He
loathed himself for the cold-bloodedness of his deed. Yet he finished, restored
the woman and bed to their proper order, and silently fled. He recovered the
crimson jewel, ground it to dust so the warding spell would return. Everything
had to appear undisturbed. Before he took wing again, he stroked his crystal
dagger. He was glad he had not been forced to use it. He detested violence.
ii) He sees with the eyes of an enemy
Nine
months and a few days later. October: A fine month for doings dark and strange,
with red and gold leaves falling to mask the mind with colorful wonders, with
cool piney breezes bringing winter promises from the high Kapenrungs, with
swollen orange moons by night, and behind it all breaths and hints of things of
fear. The month began still bright with summer's memory, like a not too
distant, detached chunk of latter August with feminine, changeable, sandwiched
September forgotten. The month gradually gathered speed, rolled downhill until,
with a plunge at the end, it dumped all into a black and wicked pit from which
the remainder of the year would be but a struggle up a mountain chasing
starshine. At its end there was a night consecrated to all that was unholy, a
night for unhallowed deeds.
The
Krief's city, Vorgreberg, was small, but not unusually so for a capital in the
Lesser Kingdoms. Its streets were unclean. The rich hadn't gotten that way
squandering income on sweepers, and the poor didn't care. Three quarters was
ancient slum, the remainder wealthy residential or given over to the trade
houses of merchants handling the silks and spices that came from the east over
the Savernake Gap. The residences of the nobles were occupied only when the
Thing sat. The rest of the year those grim old skullduggers spent at their
castles and estates, whipping more wealth from their serfs. City crime was
endemic, taxes were high, people starved to death daily, or any. of a hundred
diseases got them, corruption in government was ubiquitous, and ethnic groups
hated one another to the sullen edge of violence.
So, a
city like most, surrounded by a small country populated with normally foibled
men, special only because a king held court there, and because it was the
western terminus for caravans from the orient. From it, going west, flowed
eastern riches; to it came the best goods of the coastal states.
But, on a
day at the end of October when evil stirred, it also had:
A holiday
morning after rain, and an old man in a ragged great cloak who needed a bath
and shave. He turned from a doorway at the rear of a rich man's home. Bacon
tastes still trembled on his tongue. A copper sceat weighed lightly in his
pocket. He chuckled softly.
Then his
humor evaporated. He stopped, stared down the alley, then fled in the opposite
direction. From behind him came the sound of steel rims on brick pavement,
rattling loudly in the morning stillness. The tramp paused, scratched his
crotch, made a sign against the evil eye, then ran. The breakfast taste had
gone sour.
A man
with a pushcart eased round a turn, slowly pursued the tramp. He was a tiny
fellow, old, with a grizzled, ragged beard. His slouch made him appear utterly
weary of forcing his cart over the wet pavement. His cataracted eyes squinted
as he studied the backs of houses. Repeatedly, after considering one or
another, he shook his head.
Mumbling,
he left the alley, set course for the public grounds outside the Krief's
palace. The leafless, carefully ranked trees there were skeletal and grim in
the morning gloom and damp. The castle seemed besieged by the gray, dreary
wood.
The cart
man paused. "Royal Palace." He sneered. Castle Krief may have stood
six centuries inviolate, may have surrendered only to Ilkazar, but it wasn't
invincible. It could be destroyed from within. He thought of the comforts, the
riches behind those walls, and the hardness of his own life. He cursed the
waiting.
There was
work to be done. Miserable work. Castles and kingdoms didn't fall at the snap
of a finger.
Round the
entire castle he went, observing the sleepy guards, the ancient ivy on the
southern wall, the big gates facing east and west, and the half-dozen posterns.
Though Ravelin had petty noble feuds as numerous as fleas on a hound, they
never touched Vorgreberg itself. Those wars were for the barons, fought in their
fiefs among themselves, and from them the Crown was relatively safe, remaining
a disinterested referee.
Sometimes,
though, one of the nearby kingdoms, coveting the eastern trade, tried to move
in. Then the house-divided quickly united.
The
morning wore on. People gathered near the palace's western gate. The old man opened
his cart, got charcoal burning, soon was selling sausages and hot rolls.
Near noon
the great gate opened. The crowd fell into a hush. A company of the King's Own
marched forth to blaring trumpets. Express riders thundered out bound for the
ends of Kavelin, crying, "The King has a son!"
The crowd
broke into cheers. They had waited years for that news.
The small
old man smiled at his sausages. The King had a son to insure the continuity of
his family's tyranny, and the idiots cheered as if this were a day of
salvation. Poor foolish souls. They never learned. Their hopes for a better
future never paled. Why expect the child to become a king less cruel than his
ancestors?
The old
man held a poor opinion of his species. In other times and places he had been
heard to say that, all things considered, he would rather be a duck.
The
King's Own cleared the gate. The crowd surged forward, eager to seize the
festive moment. Commoners seldom passed those portals.
The old
man went with the mob, made himself one with their greed. But his greed wasn't
for the dainties on tables in the courtyard. His greed was for knowledge. The
sort a burglar cherished. He went everywhere allowed, saw everything permitted,
listened, paid especial attention to the ivied wall and the Queen's tower.
Satisfied, he sampled the King's largesse, drew scowls for damning the cheap
wine, then returned to his cart, and to the alleyways.
iii) He returns to the place of his iniquity
Once
again the winged man slid down a midnight sky, a momentary shadow riding the
beams of an October moon. It was Allernmas Night, nine months after his earlier
visit. He banked in a whisper of air, swooped past towers, searched his
sluggish memory. He found the right one, glided to the window, disappeared into
darkness. A red-eyed shadow in a cloak of wings, he stared across the once
festive court, waited. This second visit, he feared, was tempting Fate.
Something would go wrong.
A black
blob momentarily blocked a gap between crenellations on the battlements. It
moved along the wall, then down to the courtyard. The winged man unwound a
light line from about his waist. One end he secured to a beam above his head.
With that his mission was complete. He was supposed to take wing immediately,
but he waited for his friend instead.
Burla, a
misshapen, dwarfish creature with a bundle on his back, swarmed toward him with
the agility of the ape he resembled. The winged man turned sideways so his
friend could pass.
"You
go now?" Burla asked.
"No.
I watch." He touched his arm lightly, spilled a fangy smile. He was
frightened too. Death could pounce at any moment. "I start." He
wriggled, muttered, got the bundle off his back.
They
followed the hall the winged man had used before. Burla used devices he had
been given to overcome protective spells, then overcame the new lock on the
Queen's door...
Came a
sleepy question. Burla and the winged man exchanged glances. Their fears had
been proven well-founded, though the Master had predicted otherwise.
Nevertheless, he had armed Burla against this possibility. The dwarf handed the
winged man his bundle, took a fragile vial from his purse, opened the door a crack, tossed
it through. Came another question, sharper, louder, frightened. Burla took a heavy,
damp cloth from his pouch, resumed care of his bundle while the winged man tied
it over his twisted mouth and nose.
Still
another question from the room. It was followed by a scream when Burla stepped
inside. The cry reverberated down the hall. The winged man drew his dagger.
"Hurry!"
he said. Excited, confused voices were moving toward him, accompanied by a
clash of metal. Soldiers. He grew more frightened, thought about flying now.
But he could not abandon his friend. Indeed, he moved so the window exit would
be behind him.
His blade
began to glow along its edge. The winged man held it high before him, so it
stood out of the darkness, illuminating only his ugly face. Humans had their
fears too.
Three
soldiers came upstairs, saw him, paused. The winged man pulled his blade
closer, spread his wings. The dagger illuminated those enough to yield the
impression that he had swollen to fill the passageway. One soldier squeaked
fearfully, then ran downstairs. The others mumbled oaths.
Burla
returned with the child. "We go now." He was out the window and down
the rope in seconds. The winged man followed, seizing the rope as he went. He
rose against the moon, hoping to draw attention from Burla. The uproar was,
like pond ripples, now lapping against the most distant palace walls.
iv) He consorts with creatures of darkness
In the
Gudbrandsdal Forest, a Royal Preserve just beyond the boundary of the Siege of
Vorgreberg, a dozen miles from Castle Krief, a bent old man stared into a
sullen campfire and chuckled. "They've done it! They've done it. It's all
downhill from here."
The
heavily robed, deeply cowled figure opposite him inclined its head slightly.
The old
man, the sausage seller, was wicked—in an oddly clean, impersonal, puckish sort
of way—but the other was evil. Malefically, cruelly, blackly evil.
The
winged man, Burla, and their friends were unaware of the Master's association
with him.
v) Bold in the service of his Lord
Eanred
Tarlson, a Wesson captain of the King's Own, was a warrior of international
repute. His exploits during the El Murid wars had won renown throughout the
bellicose Lesser Kingdoms. A Wesson peasant in an infantry company, Fate had
put him near his King when the latter had received a freak, grave wound from a
ricocheting arrow Eanred had donned his Lord's armor and had held off the
fanatics for days. His action had won him a friend with a crown.
Had he
been Nordmen, he would have been knighted. The best his King could do for a
Wesson was grant a commission. The knighthood came years later. He was the
first Wesson to achieve chivalric orders since the Resettlement.
Eanred
was his King's champion, respected even by the Nordmen. He was well known as an
honest, loyal, reasonable man who dealt without treachery, who did not hesitate
to press an unpopular opinion upon the King. He stood by his beliefs.
Popularly, he was known for his victories in trials-by-combat which had settled
disputes with neighboring principalities. The Wesson peasantry believed him a
champion of their rights.
Though
Eanred had killed for his King, he was neither hard nor cruel. He saw himself
only as a soldier, no greater than any other, with no higher ambition than to
defend his King. He was of a type gold-rare in the Lesser Kingdoms.
Tarlson,
by chance, was in the courtyard when the furor broke. He arrived below the
Queen's tower in time to glimpse a winged monster dwindling against the moon,
trailing a fine line as if trolling the night for invisible aerial fish. He
studied its flight. The thing was bound toward the Gudbrandsdal.
"Gjerdrum!"
he thundered at his son and squire, who accompanied him. "A horse!"
Within minutes he galloped through the East Gate. He left orders for his
company to follow. He might be chasing the wind, he thought, but he was taking
action. The rest of the palace's denizens were squalling like old ladies caught
with their skirts up. Those Nordmen courtiers! Their ancestors may have been
tough, but today's crop were dandified cretins.
The
Gudbrandsdal wasn't far on a galloping horse. Eanred plunged in afoot after
tying his horse where others could find it. He discovered a campfire
immediately. Drawing his sword, he stalked the flames. Soon, from shadow, he
spied the winged thing talking with an old man bundled in a blanket. He saw no
weapon more dangerous than the winged thing's dagger.
That
dagger... It seemed to glow faintly. He strode toward the fire, demanded,
"Where's the Prince?" His blade slid toward the throat of the old
man.
His
appearance didn't startle the two, though they shrank away. Neither replied.
The winged man drew his blade. Yes, it glowed. Magic! Eanred shifted his sword
for defense. This monstrous, reddish creature with the blade of pale fire might
be more dangerous than he appeared.
Something
moved in the darkness behind Tarlson. A black sleeve reached. He sensed his
danger, turned cat-swift while sweeping his blade in a vertical arc. It cut
air—then flesh and bone. A hand fell beside the fire, kicking up little sprays
of dust, fingers writhing like the legs of a dying spider. A scream of pain and
rage echoed through the forest.
But
Eanred's stroke came too late. Fingers had brushed his throat. The world grew
Arctically cold. He leaned slowly like a tree cut through. All sensation
abandoned him. As he fell, he turned, saw first the dark outline of the being
that had stunned him, the startled
faces of the others, then the severed hand. The waxy,
monstrous thing was crawling toward its owner ... Everything went black. But he
tumbled into darkness with a silent chuckle. Fate had given him one small
victory. He was able to push his blade through the hand and lever it into the
fire.
vi) His heart is heavy, but he perseveres
Burla,
with the baby quiet in the bundle on his back, reached the Master's campsite as
the last embers were dying. False dawn had begun creeping over the Kapenrung
Mountains. He cursed the light, moved more warily. Horsemen had been galloping
about since he had left the city. All his nighttime skills had been required to
evade them.
Troops
had been to the campsite, he saw. There had been a struggle. Someone had been
injured. The Master's blanket lay abandoned, a signal. He was well but had been
forced to flee. Burla's unhappiness was exceeded only by his fear that he
wasn't competent to fulfill the task now assigned him.
His work,
which should have been completed, had just begun. He glanced toward the dawn.
So many miles to bear the baby through an aroused countryside. How could he
escape the swords of the tall men?
He had to
try.
Days he
slept a little, and traveled when it was safe. Nights he hurried through, moving
as fast as his short legs would carry him, only occasionally pausing at a
Wesson farm to steal food or milk for the child. He expected the poor tiny
thing to die any time, but it was preternaturally tough.
The tall
men failed to catch him. They knew he was about, knew that he had had something
to do with the invasion of the Queen's tower. They did turn the country over
and shake out a thousand hidden things. The time came when, high in the
mountains, he trudged wearily into the cave where the Master had said to meet if they had
to split up.
vii) Their heads nod, and from their mouths issue lies
An hour
after the kidnapping, someone finally thought to see if Her Majesty was all
right. They didn't think much of their Queen, those Nordmen. She was a
foreigner, barely of childbearing age, and so unobtrusive that no one spared
her a thought. Queen and nurse were found in deep, unnatural sleep. And there
was a baby at the woman's breast.
Once
again Castle Krief churned with confusion. What had been seen, briefly, as a
probable Wesson attempt to interrupt the succession, was obviously either a
great deal less, or more, sinister. After a few hints from the King himself, it
was announced that the Prince was sleeping well, that the excitement had been
caused by a guard's imagination.
Few
believed that. There had been a switch. Parties with special interests sought
the physician and midwife who had attended the birth, but neither could be
found—till much later. Their corpses were discovered, mutilated against easy
recognition, in a slum alley. Royal disclaimers continued to flow.
The
King's advisers met repeatedly, discussed the possible purpose of the invasion,
the stance to be taken, and how to resolve the affair. Time passed. The mystery
deepened. It became obvious that there would be no explanations till someone
captured the winged man, the dwarf a guard had seen go monkeying down the ivied
wall, or one of the strangers who had been camped in the Gudbrandsdal. The
dwarf was working his way east toward the mountains. No trace of the others
turned up. The army concentrated on the dwarf. So did those for whom possession
of the Crown Prince meant leverage.
The
fugitive slipped away. Nothing further came of the strange events. The King
made certain the child with his
Queen, at
least in pretense, remained his heir. The barons stopped plaguing odd strangers
and resumed their squabbles. Wessons returned to their scheming, merchants to
their counting houses. Within a year the mystery seemed forgotten, though
countless eyes kept tabs on the King's health.
TWO: The
Hearth and the Heart
I) Bragi Ragnarson and Elana Michone
Suffering
in silence, brushing her coppery hair, Elana Ragnarson endured the grumbling of
her husband.
"Bills
of lading, bills of sale, accounts payable, accounts receivable, torts and
taxes! What kind of life is this? I'm a soldier, not a bloody merchant. I
wasn't meant to be a coin counter..."
"You
could hire an accountant." The woman knew better than to add that a
professional would keep better books. His grumbling was of no moment anyway. It
came with spring, the annual disease of a man who had forgotten the hardships
of the adventurer's life. A week or so, time enough to remember sword-strokes
dangerously close, unshared beds in icy mud, hunger, and the physical grind of
forced marches, would settle him down. But he would never completely overcome
the habits of a Trolledyngjan boyhood. North of the Kratchnodian Mountains all
able males went to war as soon as the ice broke up in the harbors.
"Where
has my youth gone?" he complained as he began dressing. "When I was
fresh down from Trolledyngjan, still in my teens, I was leading troops against
El
Murid ...
Hire? Did you say hire, woman?" A heavy, hard face encompassed by shaggy
blond hair and beard momentarily joined hers in her mirror. She touched his
cheek. "Bring in some thief who'll rob me blind with numbers on paper?
"When
me and Mocker and Haroun were stealing the fat off Itaskian merchants, I never
dreamed I'd get fat in the arse and pocket myself. Those were the days. I still
ain't too old. What's thirty-one? My father's father fought at Ringerike when
he was eighty..."
"And
got himself killed."
"Yeah,
well." He rambled on about the deeds of other relatives. But each, as
Elana pointed out, had died far from home, and not a one of old age.
"It's
Haroun's fault. Where's he been the last three years? If he turned up, we could
get a good adventure started."
Elana
dropped her brush. Cold-footed mice of fear danced along her spine. This was
bad. When he began missing that ruffian bin Yousif the fever had reached a
critical pitch. If by whim of fate the man turned up, Bragi could be lured into
another insane, Byzantine scheme.
"Forget
that cutthroat. What's he ever done for you? Just gotten you in trouble since
the day you met." She turned. Bragi stood with one leg in a pair of baggy
work trousers, the other partially raised from the floor. She had said the
wrong thing. Damn Haroun! How had he gotten a hold on a man as bull-headedly
independent as Bragi?
She
suspected it was because bin Yousif had a cause, a decades-deep vendetta with
El Murid which infected his every thought and action. His dedication to
vengeance awed a man like Bragi.
Finally,
grunting, Ragnarson finished dressing. "Think I'll ride over to Mocker's
today. Visit a spell."
She sighed.
The worst was past. A day in the forest would take the edge off his wanderlust.
Maybe she should stay home next time he went to Itaskia. A night on his own, in
Wharf Street South, might be the specific for his disease.
"Papa?
Are you ready?" their eldest son, Ragnar, called through the bedroom door.
"Yeah.
What you want?"
"There's
a man here."
"This
early? Tramp, huh, looking for a handout? Tell him there's a soft touch next
house north." He chuckled. The next place north was that of his friend
Mocker, twenty miles on.
"Bragi!"
A look was enough. The last man he had sent north had been a timber buyer with
a fat navy contract.
"Yes,
dear. Ragnar? Tell him I'll be down in a minute." He kissed his wife, left
her in troubled thought.
Adventures.
She had enjoyed them herself. But no more. She had traded the mercenary days
for a home and children. Only a fool would dump what they had to cross swords
with young men and warlocks. Then she smiled. She missed the old days a little,
too.
ii) A curious visitor
Ragnarson
clumped downstairs into the dining hall and peered into its gloomy corners. It
was vast. This place was both home and fortress. It housed nearly a hundred
people in troubled times. He shivered. No one had kindled the morning fires.
"Ragnar! Where's he at?"
His son
popped from the narrow, easily defended hallway to the front door.
"Outside. He won't come in."
"Eh?
Why?"
The boy
shrugged.
"Well,
if he won't, he won't." As he strode to the door, Ragnarson snatched an
iron-capped club from a weapons rack.
Outside,
in the pale misty light of a morning hardly begun, an old, old man waited. He
leaned on a staff, stared at the ground thoughtfully. His bearing was not that
of a beggar. Ragnarson looked for a horse, saw none.
The ancient
had neither pack nor pack animal, either. "Well, what can I do for
you?"
A smile
flashed across a face that seemed as old as the world. "Listen."
"Eh?"
Bragi grew uneasy. There was something about this fellow, a presence...
"Listen.
Hear, and act accordingly. Fear the child with the ways of a woman. Beware the
bells of a woman's fingers. All magicks aren't in the hands of sorcerers."
Ragnarson started to interrupt, found that he could not. "Covet not the
gemless crown. It rides the head precariously. It leads to the place where
swords are of no avail." Having said his cryptic piece, the old man turned
to the track leading toward the North Road, the highway linking Itaskia and Iwa
Skolovda.
Ragnarson
frowned. He was not a slow-witted man. But he was unaccustomed to dealing with
mystery-mouthed old men in the sluggish hours of the morning. "Who the
hell are you?" he thundered.
Faintly,
from the woods:
"Old
as a mountain,
Lives on
a star,
Deep as
the ocean flows."
Ragnarson
pursued fleas through his beard. A riddle. Well. A madman, that's what. He
shrugged it off. There was breakfast to eat and the ride to Mocker's to be
made. No time for crazies.
iii) Things she loves and fears
Elana,
who had overheard, could not shrug it off. She feared its portent, that Bragi
was about to tie off on some hare-brained venture.
From a
high window she stared at the land and forest they had conquered together. She
remembered. They had come late in the year to a land-grant so remote that they
had had to cut a path in. That first winter had been cold and hard. The winds
and snows pouring over the
Kratchnodians
had seemed bent on revenge for the disasters wrought there the winter previous,
in Bragi's last campaign. The blood of children and wolves had christened the
new land.
The next
year there had been a flare-up of the ancient boundary dispute between Prost
Kamenets and Itaskia. Bandits, briefly legitimatized by letters of marquee from
Prost Kamenets, had come over the Silverbind. Many hadn't gone home, but the
land had also drunk the blood of its own.
The third
had been the halcyon year. Their friends Nepanthe and Mocker had been able to
break loose and take a grant of their own.
Things
had turned bad again late in the fourth year, when drought east of the
Silverbind had driven men from Prost Kamenets into a brigandry their government
ignored as long as its thrust lay across the river. Near the rear of the house,
the granary stood in charred ruins. A half-mile away the men were rebuilding
the sawmill. There were contracts for timber to be delivered to the naval yards
at Itaskia. Those had to be met first.
Counting
wives and children, there had been twenty-two pioneers. Most were dead now,
buried in places of honor beside the great house. She and Bragi had been lucky,
their only loss a daughter born dead.
Too many
graves in the graveyard. Fifty-one in all. Over the years old followers of
Bragi's and friends of hers had drifted in, some to stay a day or two out of a
journey in search of a war, some to settle and die.
The grain
was sprouting, the children were growing, the cattle were getting fat. There
was an orchard that might produce in her lifetime. She had a home almost as
large and comfortable as the one Bragi had promised her during all those years
under arms. And it was all endangered. She knew it in her bones. Something was
afoot, something grim.
Her gaze
went to the graveyard. Old Tor Jack lay in the corner, beside Randy Will who
had gotten his skull crushed pulling Ragnar from between a stallion and a mare
in heat. What would they think if Bragi threw it up now?
Jorgen
Miklassen, killed by a wild boar. Gudrun Ormsdatter, died in childbirth. Red
Lars, brought down by wolves. Jan and Mihr Krushka. Rafnir Shagboots, Walleyed
Marjo, Tandy the Gimp.
Blood and
tears, blood and tears. Nothing would bring them back. Why so morbidly
thoughtful? Break yourself out, woman. Time goes on, work has to be done. What
man hath wrought, woman must maintain.
Maxims
did nothing to cheer her. She spent the day working hard, seeking an exhaustion
that would extinguish her apprehensions.
In the
evening, as twilight's pastels were fading into indigo, a huge owl came out of
the east, flew thrice round the house widdershins, dipping and dancing with
owls from beneath the greathouse eaves. It soon fled toward Mocker's.
"Another
omen." She sighed.
iv) Mocker and Nepanthe of Ravenkrak
Mocker's
holding lay hip by thigh with Ragnarson's. Both were held under Itaskian Crown
Charter. On his own territory each had the power and responsibility of a
baron—without the privileges. Though neighbors, both found distance between
homes a convenience. They had been friends since the tail-end years of the El
Murid wars, but each found the other's extended company insufferable. The
disparity in their values kept them constantly on the simmering edge. A day's
visit, a night's drinking and remembering when, that was their limit. Neither
was known for patience, nor for an open mind.
Ragnarson
covered the distance before dinner, pretending that once again he was racing
El Murid from Hellin Daimiel to Libiannin.
Mocker
wasn't surprised to see him. Little astonished that fat old reprobate.
Ragnarson
reined in beside a short, swarthy fellow on his knees in mud. Laugh lines
permanently marked his moon-round brown face. "Hai!" he cried.
"Great man-bears! Help!" Tenants came running, grabbing weapons. The
fat man rose and whirled madly, dark eyes dancing.
A boy the
age of Bragi's Ragnar ran from a nearby smokehouse, toy bow ready. "Oh.
It's only Uncle Bear."
"Only?"
Bragi growled as he dismounted. "Only? Maybe, Ethrian, but mean enough to
box the ears of a cub." He seized the boy, threw him squealing into the
air.
Wiping
her hands on her apron, a woman came from the nearby house. Nepanthe always
seemed to be wiping her hands. Mocker left a mountain of woman's work wherever
he passed. "Bragi. Just in time for dinner. You came alone? I haven't seen
Elana since..." Her smile faded. Since the bandit passage last fall, when
Mocker's dependents had holed up in Ragnarson's stronger greathouse.
"Pretty
as ever, I see," said Ragnarson. He handed his reins to Ethrian, who
scowled, knowing he was being gotten rid of. Nepanthe blushed. She was indeed
attractive, but hardly pretty as ever. The forest years had devoured her
aristocratic delicacy. Still, she looked younger than thirty-four. "No,
couldn't bring the family."
"Business?"
She did most of Mocker's talking. Mocker had never mastered the Itaskian
tongue. His vanity was such that he avoided speaking whenever he could.
Ragnarson was not sure that inability was genuine. It varied according to some
formula known only to Mocker himself.
"No.
Just riding. Spring fever." Shifting to Necrem-nen, an eastern language in
which Mocker was more at home, he continued, "Strange thing happened this
morning. Old man appeared out of nowhere, mumbled some nonsense about girls who
act like women. Wouldn't answer a question straight out, only in riddles.
Weirdest thing is, I couldn't find a trace of him on the road. You'd think
there'd be fresh droppings, coming or going."
Nepanthe
frowned. She didn't understand the language. "Are you going to eat?"
Pettishly, she brushed long raven hair out of her eyes. A warm breeze had begun
blowing from the south.
"Of
course. That's why I came." He tried charming her with a smile.
"Same
man," Mocker replied, proving he could mangle even a language learned in
childhood, "beriddled self. Portly pursuer of pre-dawn pissery, self,
rising early to dispose of excess beer drunk night before, found same on
doorstep before sunrise."
"Impossible.
It was barely sunup when he turned up at my place..."
"For
him, is possible. Self, having encountered same before, know. Can do
anything."
"The
Old Man of the Mountain?"
"No."
"Varthlokkur?"
They were
at Mocker's door. When Ragnarson said the latter, Nepanthe gave him a hard
stare. "You're not mixed up with him again, are you? Mocker..."
"Doe's
Breast. Diamond Eyes. Light of life of noted sluggard renown for pusillanimity,
would same, being contender for title World's Laziest Man, being famous from
south beyond edge of farthest map to north in Trolledyngja, from west in
Freyland east to Matayanga, for permanent state of cowardice and
lassitude..."
"Yes,
you would. How'd you get known in all those places?"
Mocker
continued, in Necremnen, "Was famous Star Rider."
"Why?"
Ragnarson asked.
"Why
what?"
"Oh,
never mind. That's why you weren't surprised to see me?"
The fat
man shrugged. "When Star Riders come calling on fat old fool sequestered
in boundless forest, am surprised by nothings. Next, Haroun will appear out of
south with new world-conquering scheme in hand, madder than ever." This he
said sourly, as if he believed it a distinct possibility.
"If
you two can quit chicken-clucking for a minute, we can eat," said
Nepanthe.
"Sorry,
Nepanthe," Ragnarson apologized. "Some things..."
She
sighed. "As long as it's not another woman." "No, not that. Just
a minor mystery."
v) Another strange visitor
The
mystery soon deepened. Ethrian returned from the stables and, after having been
scolded for being as slow as small boys will, said, "There's a man coming.
A funny man on a little horse. I don't think I like him." Having so
declaimed, he set about devouring his dinner.
Mocker
rose, went to a front window, came back wearing a puzzled frown.
"Marco."
It took
Ragnarson a moment to recall anyone by that name. "Visigodred's
apprentice?" Visigodred was a wizard, an old acquaintance.
"Same."
Mocker looked worried. Ragnarson was disturbed himself.
A clatter
and rattle at the front door. "He's here."
"Uhn."
Both men looked at Nepanthe. For a moment she stared back, a little pale, then
went.
"About
goddamn time," came from the other room, then, "Oh, beg your pardon,
my dear lovely lady. Husband home? I hope not. Seems a shame to let a beautiful
chance meeting go to waste."
"Back
here."
Marco, a
dwarf with the ego of a giant, came strutting into the kitchen, not a bit
abashed about having been overheard. "Timing was right, I see." He
pulled up a chair, snagged a huge hunk of bread, smeared it with butter. He
ignored inquiring looks till he had gorged himself. "Suppose you're
wondering what I'm doing here. Besides stuffing my face. So am I. Well same as
always, doing the old man's legwork. Got a message for you."
"Humph!"
Mocker snorted. "No time. Am occupied with profound
compunctions—computations? Constructions?—philosophic. How to get lentils in
earth without straining back of and mud-bespattering self of, portly peasant,
self. Am no wise interested in problems and peculations of old busybody who would
interfere with ponderations on same." He looked at Nepanthe as if for
approval.
Ragnarson
was irritated. Did Nepanthe control Mocker that much? Once he had been a
wild-eyed heller, game for any insane scheme Haroun concocted. Bragi met
Nepanthe's eyes across the table. Why the laughter there? He thought, she knows
what I'm thinking.
"What
the boss wanted me to tell you was this: 'In a land of many kings trust no hand
but your own, nor allow you the right far from sight of the left. Men there
change loyalties more often than underwear. Stand wary of all women, and tamper
not with the place, and name, and cloak, of Mist.' What the hell that means I
don't know. He's not usually that hard to pin down. But he's got a stake in it
somehow. I guess his girlfriend is in. Well, got to go. Thank you for a
delightful meal, my lady."
"Hold
on," Ragnarson growled. "What the hell, hey? What's going on?"
"You
got me, Hairy. I just work for the man, I don't read his mind. You want to know
more, you check with himself. Only he won't see you. Told me to tell you that.
I forgot. He said there's no way he can help you this time. Did all he could by
sending me. Now, if you don't mind, I'll be getting along. There's two, three
little birds at home might pine away if I don't get back to them soon."
Refusing to answer further questions, he returned to his pony. The last they
saw of him, he was entering the forest at a brisk trot, a bawdy song trailing
behind him.
"You'd
think a man like Visigodred could find an apprentice with a little more
couth," Ragnarson said. "Well, what do you think?"
"Self,
am bamboozled. Befuddled by dearth of sense." Mocker's eyes flicked toward
Nepanthe. One chubby-brown hand made the deaf-mute's sign for "Be
careful."
Ragnarson
smiled, glad to see the spark of rebellion.
It did
not occur to him that, were Mocker visiting him, he would have seemed as
henpecked. Ragnarson was not an empathetic person.
"Heard
from informant Andy the Bum," said Mocker, returning to Necremnen.
"News of Itaskia. Andy was
pestilential mendicant always beside entrance of Red
Hart, intelligent behind ubiquitous flies and filth. Sometimes remembers old
contributor, self, with missives relating Wharf Street South street talk."
Mocker
was talking as plainly as he could. Must be important. "Month past, maybe
more counting time for letter to make tortuous way from correspondent to
recipient, Haroun visited Itaskia."
Nepanthe
caught the name. "Haroun? Haroun bin Yousif? Mocker, you stay away from that
cutthroat..."
Ragnarson
wrestled with his temper. "That's not charitable, Nepanthe. You owe the
man."
"I
don't want Mocker involved with him. He'd end up using us in one of his
schemes."
"It
was one of those that got you together."
"Elana..."
"I
know what Elana thinks. She has her reasons." Elana was the first real
friend Nepanthe had ever had. In a sort of pathetic, desperate way, she tried
to secure that friendship by making herself a mirror of Elana. Even Mocker had
less influence than Ragnarson's wife.
His
curtness upset Nepanthe. Usually he was gentle beyond the reasonable. He was
secretly afraid of women.
Nepanthe
sulked.
"What
about him?"
"Was
putting finger in nasty place, coming out dirty. Was talking to scurriliousest
of scurrils of Wharf Street South. Brad Red Hand. Kerth the Dagger. Derran One
' Eye. Boroba Thring. Breed known for stab-in-back work. Very secretive. Went
off without visiting friends. Accident Andy discovered same. Whore friend, also
friend of Kerth, relayed story."
"Curious.
Men he's used before. When he wanted murder done. Think-he's up to
something?"
"Hai!
Always. When was Haroun, master intriguer, not intriguing? Is question like
Trolledyngjan, 'Does bear defecate in wilderness?'"
"Yeah,
the bear shits in the woods. The question is, does he have plans for us? He
can't manage on his own. I wonder why? He's always so self-sufficient."
Faced with a real possibility of becoming involved, Ragnarson's lust for adventure
perished quickly. "Andy have anything else to say?"
"Men
named vanished, no word to friends or paramours. Seen crossing Great Bridge.
Nervous, in hurry. Self, expect communication from old sand devil soon. Why?
Haroun is one-man nation, yes, but must justify villainous activities of self
to self. Must have associates, men of respected morals. Kingship thing. Must
have mandate of, license from, men with values, with judgments of respect. He
respects? You see? Itaskian knife swingers are tools, not-men, dust beneath
feet, of morals to spit on. Hairy Trolledyngjan and fat old rascal from east,
self, not much better, but honorable in mind of Haroun. Men of respect, us.
Comprehend?"
"Makes
sense in a left-handed way. An insight, 1 think. I always wondered why he never
put the knife work on us. Yes."
Mocker
did a most un-Mockerlike thing. He pushed
his
chair back while
food remained on
the table.
Ragnarson
started to follow him to the front of the house.
"Don't
get involved with Haroun," said Nepanthe.
"Please?"
He
searched her face. She was frightened. "What can I do? When he decides to
do something, he gets irresistible as a glacier."
"I
know." She bit her lip.
"We're
not planning anything, really. Haroun would have to do some tall talking to
involve us. We're not as hungry as we used to be."
"Maybe.
Maybe not." She began clearing the table. "Mocker doesn't complain,
but he wasn't made for this." With a gesture she indicated the landgrant.
"He stays, and tries for my sake, but he'd be happier penniless, sitting
in the rain somewhere, trying to convince old ladies he's a soothsayer. That
way he's like Haroun. Security doesn't mean anything. The battle of wits is
everything."
Ragnarson
shrugged. He couldn't tell her what she wanted to hear. Her assessment matched
his own.
"I've
made him miserable, Bragi. How long since you've seen him clown like he used
to? How long since he's gone off on some wild tangent and claimed the world is round, or a
duck-paddled boat on a sea of wine, or any of those crackpot notions he used to
take up. Bragi, I'm killing him. I love him, but, Gods help me, I'm smothering
him. And I can't help it."
"We
are what we are, will be what we must. If he goes back to the old ways, be
patient. One thing's sure. You're his goddess. He'll be back. To stay. Things
get romanticized when they slide into the past. A dose of reality might be the
cure."
"I
suppose. Well, go talk. Let me clean up." She obviously wanted to have a
good cry.
vi) An owl from Zindahjira
Ragnarson
and Mocker were still on the front step when darkness fell. They were deep into
a keg of beer. Neither man spoke much. The mood was not one suited to
reminiscing. Bragi kept considering Mocker's homestead. The man had worked
hard, but everything had been done sloppily. The patience and perfection of the
builder who cared was absent. Mocker's home might last his lifetime, but not
centuries like Ragnarson's.
Bragi
glanced sideways. His friend was haggard, aging. The strain of trying to be
something he was not was killing him. And Nepanthe was tearing herself apart
too. How bad had their relationship suffered already?
Nepanthe
was the more adaptable. She had been a man-terrified twenty-eight-year-old
adolescent when first their paths had crossed. She was no introverted romantic
now. She reminded Bragi of the earthy, pragmatic, time-beaten peasant women of
the treacherous floodplains of the Silverbind. Escape from this life might do
her good too.
Mocker
had always been a chimera, apparently at home in any milieu. The man within was
the rock to which he anchored himself. What was visible was protective
coloration. In an environment where he needed only be himself, he must feel
terribly vulnerable. The lack of any
immediate danger, after a lifetime of adjustment to
its continual presence, could push some men to the edge.
Ragnarson
was not accustomed to probing facades. It made him uncomfortable. He snorted,
downed a pint of warm beer. Hell with it. What was, was. What would be, would
be.
A sudden
loud, piercing shriek made him choke and spray beer. When he finished wiping
tears from his eyes, he saw a huge owl pacing before him.
He had
seen that owl before. It served as messenger for Zindahjira the Silent, a much
less pleasant sorcerer than the Visigodred who employed Marco.
"Desolation
and despair," Mocker groaned. "Felicitations from Pit. Self, think
great feathered interlocuter maybe should become owl stew, and tidings bound to
leg tinder for starting fire for making same."
"That
dwarf would be handy now," said Ragnarson. Both ignored the message.
"So?"
"He
talks to owls. In their own language."
"Toadfeathers."
"Shilling?"
"Self,
being penurious unto miserhood, indigent unto poverty, should take wager when
friend Bear is infamous as bettor only on sure things? Get message."
"Why
don't you?"
"Self,
being gentleman farmer, confirmed anti-literate, and retired from adventure
game, am not interested."
"I
ain't neither."
"Then
butcher owl."
"I
don't think so. Zindahjira would stew us. Without benefit of prior
butchery."
"When
inevitable is inevitable... Charge!" Mocker shouted the last word. The owl
jumped, but refused to retreat.
"Give
him a beer," said Ragnarson.
"Eh?"
"Be
the hospitable thing to do, wouldn't it?" He had drunk too much. In that
condition he developed a childish sense of humor. There was an old saw,
"Drunk as a hoot owl," about which he had developed a sudden
curiosity.
Mocker
set his mug before the bird. It drank. "Well, we'd better see what old
Black Face wants." Bragi recovered the message. "Hunh! Can you
believe this? It says he'll forgive all debts and transgressions—as if any
existed—if we'll just catch him the woman called Mist. That old bastard never
gives up. How long has he been laying for Visigodred? Tain't right, hurting a
man through his woman."
Mocker
scowled. "Threats?"
"The
usual. Nothing serious. Some hints about something he's afraid to mix in, same
as Visigodred."
Mocker
snorted. "Pusillanimous skulker in subterranean tombs, troglodytic
denizen of darkness, enough! Let poor old fat fool wither in peace." He
had begun to grow sad, to feel sorry for himself, A tear trickled from one
large, dark eye. He reached up and put a hand on Ragnarson's shoulder.
"Mother of self, long time passing, sang beautiful song of butterflies and
gossamer. Will sing for you." He began humming, searching for a tune.
Ragnarson
frowned. Mocker was an orphan who had known neither father nor mother, only an
old vagabond with whom he had traveled till he had been able to escape. Bragi
had heard the story a hundred times. But in his cups, Mocker lied more than
usual, about more personal things. One had to humor him or risk a fight.
The owl,
a critic, screeched hideously, hurled himself into the air, fluttered drunkenly
eastward. Mocker sent a weak curse after him.
A little
later Nepanthe came out and led them to their beds, two morose gentlemen with
scant taste for their futures.
THREE: The Long, Mailed Reach of The Disciple
i) A secret device, a secret admirer
Elana
rose wondering if Bragi had reached Mocker's safely. How soon would he be home?
The forest was a refuge for Itaskia's fugitives. Several bands roamed the North
Road. Some had grievances with Bragi. He took his charter seriously, suppressed
banditry with a heavy hand. Some would gladly take revenge.
She went
to a clothing chest and took out an ebony casket the size of a loaf of bread.
Some meticulous craftsman had spent months carving its intricate exterior. The
work was so fine it would have eluded the eye but for the silver inlay. She did
not know what the carving represented. Nothing within her experience, just
whorls and swirls of black and silver which, if studied overlong, dazed the
mind.
Her
names, personal and family, were inset in the lid in cursive ivory letters.
They were of no alphabet she knew. Mocker had guessed it to be Escalonian, the
language of a land so far to the east it was just a rumor.
She
didn't know its source, only that, a year ago, the Royal Courier, who carried
diplomatic mail between Itaskia and Iwa Skolovda, had brought it up from the
' capital. He had
gotten it from a friend who rode diplomatic post to Libiannin, and that man had
received it from a merchant from Vorgreberg in the Lesser Kingdoms. The parcel
had come thither with a caravan from the east. Included had been an unsigned
letter explaining its purpose. She didn't know the hand. Nepanthe thought it
was her brother Turran's.
Turran
had tried Elana's virtue once. She had never told Bragi.
With a
forefinger she traced the ivory letters. The top popped open. Within, on a
pillow of cerulean silk, lay a huge ruby raindrop. Sometimes the jewel grew
milky and light glowed within the cloudiness.
This
happened when one of her family was in danger. The intensity of light indicated
the peril's gravity. She checked the jewel often, especially when Bragi was
away.
There was
always a mote at the heart of the teardrop. Danger could not be eliminated from
life. But today the cloudiness was growing.
"Bragi!"
She grabbed clothes. Bandits? She would have to send someone to Mocker's. But
wait. She had best post a guard all round. There had been no rumors, but
trouble could come over the Silverbind as swiftly as a spring tornado. Or from
Driscol Fens, or the west. Or it could be the tornado that had entered her
thoughts. It was that time of year, and the jewel did not just indicate human
dangers.
"Ragnar!"
she shouted, "come here!" He would be up and into something. He was
always the first one stirring.
"What,
Ma?"
"Come
here!" She dressed hurriedly.
"What?"
"Run
down to the mill and tell Bevold I want him. And I mean run."
"Ah..."
"Do
it!" He vanished. That tone brooked no defiance.
Bevold
Lif was a Freylander. He was the Ragnarsons' foreman. He slept at the mill so
he would waste no time trekking about the pastures. He was a fastidious, fussy
little man, addicted to work. Though he had been one for years, he wasn't
suited to be a soldier. He was a craftsman, a builder, a doer, and a master at
it. What Bragi imagined, Bevold made reality. The tremendous development of the
landgrant was as much his doing as Ragnarson's.
Elana
didn't like Bevold. He presumed too much. But she acknowledged his usefulness.
And appreciated his down-to-earth solidity.
Lif
arrived just as she stepped from the house.
"Ma'am?"
"A
minute, Bevold. Ragnar, start your chores."
"Aw,
Ma, I..."
"Go."
He went.
She permitted no disobedience. Bragi indulged the children to a fault.
"Bevold,
there's trouble coming. Have the men arm themselves. Post the sentries. Send
someone to Mocker's. The rest can work, but stay close to the house. Get the
women and children here right away."
"Ma'am?
You're sure?" Lif had pale thin lips that writhed like worms. "I
planned to set the mill wheel this morning and open the flume after
dinner."
"I'm
sure, Bevold. Get ready. But don't start a panic."
"As
you will." His tone implied that no emergency justified abandoning the
work schedule. He wheeled his mount, cantered toward the mill.
As she
watched him go, Elana listened. The birds were singing. She had heard that they
fell silent when a tornado was coming. The cloud cover, just a few ragged
galleons sweeping ponderously north, suggested no bad weather. Tornados came
with grim black cumulo-nimbus dreadnoughts that flailed about with sweeps of
lightning.
She shook
her head. Bevold was a good man, and loyal. Why couldn't she like him?
As she
turned to the door, she glimpsed Ragnar's shaggy little head above a bush.
Eavesdropping! He would get a paddling after he brought the eggs in.
ii) Homecoming of a friend
Elana
sequestered herself with her teardrop the rest of the morning. She held
several through-the-door conversations with Bevold, the last of which, after
she had ordered field rations for dinner, became heated. She won the argument,
but knew he would complain to Bragi about the wasted workday.
The jewel
grew milkier by the hour. And the men more lax.
In a
choice between explaining or relying on authority, she felt compelled to choose
the latter. Was that part of the jewel's magic? Or her own reluctance to tell
Bragi about Turran's interest?
By
midafternoon the milkiness had consumed the jewel's clarity. The light from
within was intense. She checked the sky. Still only a scatter of clouds. She
returned the casket to the clothing chest, went downstairs. Bevold clumped
round the front yard, checking weapons for the twentieth time, growling.
"Bevold,
it's almost time. Get ready."
Disbelief
filled his expression, stance, and tone. "Yes, Ma'am."
"They'll
come from the south." The glow of her jewel intensified when she turned
the pointed end toward Itaskia.
"Send
your main party that way. Down by the barrow."
"Really..."
What Lif
meant to say she never learned. A warning wolfs howl came from the southern
woods. Bevold's mouth opened and closed. He turned, mounted, shouted.
"Let's go."
"Dahl
Haas," Elana snapped at a fifteen-year-old who had insinuated himself into
the ranks. "Get off that horse! You want to play soldier, take Ragnar and
a bow up in the watchtower."
"But..."
"You
want me to call your mother?"
"Oh,
all right." Gerda Haas was a dragon.
Elana
herded Dahl inside, stopped at the weapons rack while he selected a bow. The
strongest he could draw was her own.
"Take
it," she said. She took a rapier and dagger, weapons that had served her
well. She had had a bit of success as an adventuress and hire-sword, herself. She added
a light crossbow, returned to the horse left by Dahl.
She
overtook the men at a barrow mound near the edge of the forest, not far from
the head of a logging road which ran to the North Road.
In
military matters Bevold was unimaginative. He and the others milled about, in
the open, completely unready for action.
"Bevold!"
she snapped, "Can't you take me seriously? What'll you do if fifty men
come out of the woods?"
"Uh..."
"Get
run over, that's what. Put a half dozen bowmen on the barrow. Where's Uthe
Haas? You're in charge. The rest of you get behind the barrow, out of
sight."
"Uh..."
Bevold was getting red.
"Shut
up!" She listened. From afar came the sound of hoofbeats. "Hear that?
Let's move. Uthe. You. You. Up. And nobody shoots till I say. We don't know
who's coming." She scrambled up the mound after Haas.
Lying in
the grass, watching the road, she wondered what prehistoric people had built
the barrows. They were scattered all along the Silverbind.
The
hoofbeats drew closer. Why wasn't she back at the house? She wasn't young and
stupid anymore. She should leave the killing and dying to those who thought it
their birthright.
Too late
to change her mind now. She rolled onto her back, readied the crossbow. She
studied the clouds. She had not looked for castles and dragons in years.
Childhood memories came, only to be interrupted when a rider burst from the
forest.
She
rolled to her stomach and studied him over the crossbow. He was wounded. A
broken arrow protruded from his back. He clung weakly to a badly lathered
horse. Neither appeared likely to survive the day. Both wore a thick coat of
road dust. They had been running hard for a long time. The man's scabbard was
empty. He was otherwise unarmed.
She
glimpsed his face as he thundered past. "Rolf!" she gasped.
"Rolf Preshka!" Then, "Uthe, get ready." While the bowmen
thrust arrows in the mound for quick use, she waved at Bevold. A lot of horses were
coming. She had no idea who their riders might be, but Preshka's enemies were
her own.
Rolf had
been her man before Bragi, though Ragnarson didn't know the relationship's
depth. She still felt guilty when she remembered how she had hurt him. But his
love, rare for the time, and especially for an Iwa Skolovdan, was the unjealous
kind. The kind that, when at last she had set her heart, had caused him to help
her snare Ragnarson.
Preshka,
like Bragi, was a mercenary. After Elana's marriage he had joined Ragnarson as
second in command. When Bragi had gotten out, Preshka had joined the party that
had beat its way in to the landgrant. But he had been unable to put down roots.
Two years later, Bragi's foster brother, Haaken Blackfang, and Reskird
Kildragon had come by. Rolf had gone off with them, leaving a wife and child
mystified and hurt.
In her
own way, Elana cared for Preshka as much as her husband. Though their
relationship had remained proper since her marriage, she missed him. He had
been around so long that he had become a pillar of her universe.
Now he
was home. And someone was trying to kill him.
iii) Sons of the Disciple
A
flash-flood of burnoosed horsemen roared from the wood. Elana had a moment to
be startled by their appearance so far from'Hammad al Nakir, another to wonder
at their numbers—there were forty or fifty, then it was time to fight.
"Go!" she shrieked.
Her
bowmen leapt up, loosed a flight that sent the leaders tumbling over their
horses' tails, caused tripping, screams, and confusion behind.
Bevold's
group swept round the mound, loosed a flight, abandoned their bows for swords.
They crashed the head of the line while confusion yet gripped their foes.
In the first minute they looked likely to overwhelm the lot.
"The
riders!" bellowed Uthe Haas. "Aim at the riders."
"Don't
count your chickens, Uthe," Elana replied from the grass. There was little
she could do with her crossbow. "Take what you can get." Haas,
smelling a victory still far from certain, wanted the mounts as prizes.
They
almost pulled it off. Half the enemy saddles were clear before they recovered.
The wild
riders of Hammad al Nakir had never learned to handle the Itaskian arrow-storm.
The appearance of Itaskian bow regiments had ordained their defeat during the
wars. In a dozen major battles through Libiannin, Hellin Daimiel, Cardine, and
the Lesser Kingdoms, countless fanatics had ridden into those cloth-yard
swarms, through six hundred yards of death, and few had survived to hurl
themselves upon the masking shieldmen.
But the
commander here wasn't awed. He seized the ground between Lif s men and the
barrow, eliminating the screen Bevold could have provided, then sent everyone
unhorsed to get the bows.
"Those
are soldiers, not bandits," Elana muttered. "El Murid's men."
Royalist refugees from Hammad al Nakir were scattered throughout the western
kingdoms, but they were adherents of Haroun's. They would not be after Preshka.
Assuming Rolf was still a friend of bin Yousif.
She got
her chance to fight. Two quick shots with the crossbow, then the attackers
arrived. Her first had deep, dark eyes and a scimitar nose. His eyes widened when
he recognized her sex. He hesitated. Her rapier slipped through his guard. She
had a moment before she engaged again.
The man
had been middle-aged, certainly a survivor of the wars. If these were all
veterans, they were El Murid's best. Why such an investment to take one man,
nearly a thousand miles from home?
Her next
opponent was no gentleman. Neither was he a dainty fencer. He knew the
limitations and liabilities of a rapier, tried to use the weight and strength
of his saber to smash through. As he forced her back, she met his eyes over
crashing blades. He could have been the twin of the man she had
killed. The fires of fanaticism burned in his eyes, but, having endured the
wars, were dampened. He no longer believed El Murid's salvation could be delivered
to the infidel with hammer blows. The Chosen, even in the grace and might of
God, had to spread the faith with cunning and finesse. The idolaters were too
numerous and bellicose.
The man
wasn't so much interested in killing her as in forcing her out of position.
Without a shield, rapier-armed, and physically less powerful, she was the weak
point in the defense box they had formed. Her chance lay in taking advantage of
his effort.
She
parried a feint, thrust short and low at his groin, backed a step before he
unleashed the edge-blow meant to force her to do just that. She made no effort
to parry. His blade slid past a fraction of an inch from her breast. Being a
half-second ahead gave her time to thrust at his groin again before he returned
to low guard. She scored.
His
blocking stroke smashed into her blade near the hilt, bent it dangerously,
forced it from the wound. Her own momentum took her to her knees. She used her
impetus to prick the thigh of the attacker on her I opponent's left. Then she had
to get the rapier up to block her antagonist's weak followup.
Instead
of raining blows upon her while she was down, he used his greater strength to
force his weapon down while he tried to knee her in the face. Again she let him
have his way. With her left hand, beneath their locked blades, she used her
dagger, going first for the big vein inside his left thigh, then the ligaments
behind his knee. Neither blow was successful, but she hurt him. He backed off
to let another man take his place.
The man
she had pricked went down. Uthe grabbed the opportunity to force her inside the
box. No gentlemanly gesture, she realized. She was becoming more a liability
than an asset.
Between
and over the heads of the fighters, she tried to see how Bevold was doing.
Not well.
He was trying to reach the mound, but his men had become hopelessly
disorganized and it seemed unlikely any could push through. Half his saddles
were empty
anyway. As she watched, Bevold himself succumbed to a blow on the helmet.
And
desert men by ones and twos continued to straggle from the forest. Soon they
would send a detachment after Rolf.
She
looked homeward to check Preshka's progress. There was no sign of him, but she
did see something that buoyed her spirits. Riders in the distance, only specks
now, but coming fast, straight through the grainfields.
"Bragi!"
she shrieked. "Bragi's coming!"
Uthe and
the others took it up as a war chant, vented a moment of wild ferocity on their
enemies.
Elana
felt something underfoot. She looked down. Her crossbow. She still had
quarrels. She snatched it up, cocked and loaded it, looked for a target.
Just then
the man on Uthe's left, growing too enthusiastic, broke the shield wall. An
enemy took instant advantage. He paid the price of his foolishness. The man to
his left fell as well.
That
two-man hole, for the seconds it existed, loomed ominous. Elana put a bolt into
a man trying to open it wider, clubbed a second with the crossbow, bought time
for the gap to close.
A square
then, with Elana cramped inside, too crowded to do anything but jab with her
dagger.
Why was
Bragi taking so long?
Only a
minute had passed since she had spotted the riders, but it seemed an age. What
good help that arrived too late?
iv) To ride against time
This time
there was no lack of motivation in Ragnarson's ride. He didn't have to pretend
he was racing El Murid. When Elana's messenger met him on the road, he took
only a moment to order the man on to Mocker's for reinforcements. He began
galloping.
The horse
was fresh but incapable of carrying such a
heavy rider so hard so long. It collapsed a mile
north of his northernmost sentry post. There was no flogging the animal on.
Carrying only his weapons, he ran. That was difficult. His legs were stiff and
his thighs were chafed from two hard days in the saddle.
It never
occurred to him that Elana might have sent her message before danger was
actually upon her. He expected to be too late to do anything but count the
dead. But he ran.
By the
time he reached the lookout post he was almost as winded as the abandoned
horse. Out of shape, he thought, as he staggered the last hundred yards, lungs
afire.
The
sentry remained on duty. He ran to meet Ragnarson. "Bragi, what
happened?"
"Horse
foundered," he gasped. "What's going on, Chotty?"
"Your
wife got up excited. Put out sentries. Sent Flay to get you. But nothing
happened till a minute ago."
"What?"
His guts were about to come up. All this action after last night's beer.
"South
call. The wolf."
"Uhn.
Any others?" They reached the man's hiding place. He had only one horse.
"No."
"No
ideas?"
"No."
He had a
vague notion of his own, inferences drawn on yesterday's mysteries. "Got
your horn? Get up behind me here. She can carry us to the house."
As they
rode, Ragnarson sounded the horn, alternating his personal blast with those
for the greathouse. Anyone not already in a fight would meet him there.
He found
a few men there ahead of him, saw a half dozen more coming. Good. Now, where
was Elana?
Gerda
Haas came from the house.
"Where's
Elana?"
"Crazy
fool you married, Ragnarson. Like I told Uthe when you did, you'll get nothing
but trouble from that one."
"Gerda."
"Ah,
then, she rode off with Uthe and Bevold and the others. South. Took my Dahl's
horse, she did, just like..."
"How
many?"
"Counting
her ladyship and the sentries already down there, nineteen I'd guess."
Then all
the help he could hope for was already in sight.
Ragnar
came running round Gerda, but the old dragon was quick. She caught his collar
before he got out of reach. "You stay inside when you're told."
"Papa?"
"Inside,
Ragnar. If he gives you any trouble, whack him. And I'll whack him again when I
get back. Where's Dahl?"
"In
the tower." She scooped Ragnar up and brushed the tears from his eyes. The
boy was unaccustomed to shortness from his father.
"Toke,"
Ragnarson ordered, "get some horses for me and Chotty. Dahl! Dahl
Haas!" He bellowed to the watch-tower, "What you see?"
"Eh?"
"Come
on, boy. Can you see anything?"
"Lot
of dust down by the barrow. Maybe a big fight. Can't tell. Too far."
The
barrow lay near the tip of a long finger of cleared land pointing south, with
the millstream and lumbering road meandering down it. He had been clearing that
direction because the logs could be floated to the mill. It was two miles from
the house to the barrow.
"Horsemen?"
Bragi called.
"Maybe.
Like I said, a lot of dust."
"How
long?"
"Only
a couple minutes."
"Uhn."
Bad. Must be something besides, a gang of bandits. H is people could take care
of that with a flight of arrows.
Toke came
round the house with the horses. The women had started saddling them when he
and Chotty had come in sight. "All right, everybody that can use one, get
a lance. Gerda, get some shields." He was wearing a mail shirt already—a
habit when he traveled—so needed
waste no time donning that. "And for god's sake,
something to drink."
While he
waited he looked around. Elana had done well. All the livestock had been herded
into the cellars, the heavy slitted shutters were over the windows, the
building had been soaked with water against fire, and no one was outside who
had no need to be.
A girl
Dahl's age brought him a quart of milk. Ugh. But this was no time for ale or
beer. Beer made him sweat, especially across his brow, and he needed no
perspiration in his eyes during a fight.
"Lock
up after us," he told Gerda as he swung into the saddle and accepted
shield, ax, and lance from another of the women. "Helmet? Where's my
damned helmet?" He had left it with the foundered horse. "Somebody
find me a helmet." To Gerda again, "If we're not back, don't give up.
Mocker's on his way."
The girl
who had brought him the milk returned with a helmet. Ragnarson groaned. It was
gold- and silver-chased with high, spread silver wings at the sides, a noble's
dress helmet that he had plundered years ago. But she was right. It was the
only thing around that would fit his head. If he weren't so cheap, he'd have a
spare. He disappeared into the thing, glared around, daring someone to laugh.
No one
did. The situation was too grim.
"Dahl,
what's happening?"
"Same
as before."
Everyone
was mounted, armed, ready. "Let's go."
He wasted
no time. He rode straight for the barrow, over sprouting wheat.
v) Sometimes you bite the bear, and sometimes the bear bites
you
Even
while still a long way away, Ragnarson saw that the situation was grim. There
were four or five men on the barrow, afoot, surrounded. As many more were below,
on horseback, hard-pressed. Men from both sides, unhorsed, were fighting on the
ground. There were more attackers than defenders, and those professionals by
their look. He couldn't see Elana. Fear snapped at his heart like the sudden
bite of a bear trap.
He was
not afraid of the fighting—much; a truly fearless man was a fool and certain to
die young—but of losing Elana. They had an odd, open marriage. Outsiders
sometimes thought there was no love between them, but their interdependence
went beyond love. Without one another, neither would have been a complete
person.
He slowed
the pace briefly, signaled his lancers into line abreast. Those who couldn't
handle a lance stayed back with their bows.
Some
cavalry charge, Ragnarson thought. Six lances. In Libiannin Greyfells had
commanded fourteen thousand horses and ten thousand bows, plus spearmen and
mercenaries.
But every
battle was the big one to the men involved. Scope and scale had no meaning when
your life was on the line. It came down to you and the man you had to kill
before he could kill you.
The
foreigners weren't expecting more company. Indeed, a freehold this size should
have had fewer men about, but Ragnarson's land wasn't a freehold (in the sense
that he had been enfiefed and owed the Crown a military obligation), and many
of his hangers-on weren't married.
The
attackers noticed his approach only after he was less than a quarter-mile
distant. They had hardly begun to sort themselves out when he struck.
Ragnarson
presented his lance, swung his shield across his body, gripped his reins in his
lance hand. His shield was a round one, in the Trolledyngjan style, and not fit
for a horseman. He paid the price almost immediately.
As his
lancehead entered the breast of his first opponent, a glancing saber stroke
slashed his unshielded left thigh. The sudden pain distracted him. He lost his
.lance as the man he had slain went over his horse's tail.
Then his
mount smashed into two others, momentarily trapping him. He couldn't drag out
his sword. He clawed at the Trolledyngjan ax slung across his back while warding off
swordstrokes with his shield, began chopping kindling from the nearest
unfamiliar target.
A
progression of dark faces appeared before him, men his own age with deep-set,
dark eyes and heavy aquiline noses, like a parade of bin Yousif s. Desert men.
But not Haroun's Royalists. What were they doing this far from Hammad al Nakir?
Three
opponents he demolished with his berserk, overpowering attack, then, with a
sinking in his stomach, felt his mount going down. Someone had slashed her
hamstrings. He had to hurl ax and shield away as he leapt to avoid being pinned
beneath. The jump threw him face-first into someone's boot and stirrup. A
swordstroke proved the small battle-worth of his fancy helmet. A wing came off.
A dent so deep that the metal bruised his scalp left him half-unconscious. On
hands and knees, with hooves stamping all around, he lifted his visor to heave
the milk he had drunk.
With bile
in his mouth, thinking the pukes and a dented helmet were cheaper than a shaved
ear, he rose in the melee like a bear beset by hounds, sprang barehanded at the
nearest enemy not looking his way. With his forearm across the man's throat,
using him as a shield, he struggled out of the thickest press.
While
strangling his victim, he looked around. The remaining horsemen were drifting
toward the forest. Only a handful from either side were still in their saddles.
His own people, on the ground, were having the best of a more numerous foe.
They were in their element, being infantrymen by trade. Here and there they
were linking up in twos and threes. In a bit they would have a shield wall.
Things
weren't going that well atop the mound. He saw Elana now. She, Uthe Haas, and
another man were trying to hold off three times their number and managing well
enough that their attackers had not noticed their comrades withdrawing.
There was
no one to send to the mound. Except himself. And he would be no use charging
into that mess. Just fodder for the Reaper. But a bowman could help.
There
must be a bow somewhere. His people all used them. He trotted over the litter
of dead and wounded, and broken, abandoned, and lost weapons. He found a crossbow of
the type El Murid's men preferred, but it was useless without a string. He had
never gotten the hang of the things anyway. Then he found a short bow of the
desert variety, a weak thing easily used from a horse's back, but that had
suffered the ungentle caress of a horse's hoof. Finally, as he was about to
snatch up a sword and go screaming up the barrow anyway, he found his hamstrung
mare with his bow and arrows still slung behind her saddle.
He went
to work.
This was
the kind of fighting he preferred. Stand off and let them have it. He was good
with a bow. Target plinking, he thought.
His
fourth victim went down. Yes, much better than getting up toe to toe and
smelling your opponent's rotten breath and sweat and fear. And you didn't have
to look them in the eyes when they realized they were going to die.
For
Ragnarson that was the worst part. Killing was damned discomfiting when he was
nose to nose with the fact that he was ending a human life.
His sixth
score broke the siege. The survivors followed their comrades toward the forest.
Trotting, Ragnarson lofted a few desultory shafts to keep them moving, at the
same time shouted, "Let them go!" to Elana and Uthe. "They've
had enough. Let's not get anybody killed after we've won."
Elana
sent a look toward the forest, then threw herself at her husband. "Am I
glad to see you!"
"What
the hell do you think you're doing, woman? Out here without even a helmet. Why
the hell aren't you at the house? I've a mind to... Damn! I will." He
dropped to one knee, bent her across the other, reared back to smack her
bottom. Then he noticed his men gathering. Grinning, those who had the strength
left.
"Well,"
he growled, "you know what to do. Pick up the mess." He rose, set a
subdued Elana back on her feet. "Woman, you pull something like this
again, I'll break your butt and not care who's watching."
Then he
hugged her so hard she squealed.
As often
happened in a wild mixup, there were fewer
dead than seemed likely in the heat of action. But
virtually all his people were wounded. The enemy had taken some of their
injured with them. The worst hurt had been left behind. Bevold Lif, still
dazed, stumbled up to report four of their people killed. The count on the
enemy wasn't final. His men were still making corpses out of casualties.
"Damn!"
Elana said suddenly. "How's Rolf?"
"Rolf
who?"
"Rolf
Preshka. Didn't you see him? They were chasing him. He was bad hurt."
"No.
Preshka? What the hell? Where'd he come from? Bevold! Take over here. I'll be
back in a little while." To Elana, "Let's catch a couple
horses."
Of those
there was no shortage. The raiders had left most of theirs behind. The animals,
once safe from the fighting, had begun cropping wheat sprouts. They would have
to be rounded up or the damage they would do would cut into the plunder-profit
from their capture. Good desert horses sold high.
"Which
way was he headed?"
"Toward
the house."
"He
didn't make it."
"You
think they caught him?"
"Didn't
see any of them on the way down. No telling what happened."
They had
ridden a mile when Elana said, "Over there." A riderless horse grazed
beside the millstream.
They
found Preshka not far away. He was alive, but barely. The arrow had penetrated
a lung. It would take a miracle to save him. Or perhaps Nepanthe, if they could
get her down from Mocker's. She had studied medicine during her lonely youth,
with the wizard Varthlokkur as tutor, and she had the magic of her family.
"Here,"
Ragnarson said, "we'd better make a litter," He drew his sword and
set to work on some sapplings left to shade the creak. "Might be good
fishing this summer," he observed, spotting a lazy carp. "Maybe we
can put some up for winter."
Elana,
slitting Preshka's jerkin so she could look at his wound, frowned. "Why
not just catch them when you get the taste? The rest will be there when you
want them."
"Uhn.
You're right." He had two long poles cut, was lopping branches.
"Thing like today put me in mind of times when there wasn't no coming
back. Talking about fish, what do you think of us putting a dam across the
creek up where those high banks are?"
"Why?"
She was too worried about Rolf to care.
"Well,
like I told Bevold the other day, so we'd have water in a dry spell."
"There
was water last summer. The springs kept running."
"Yeah,
well." He dragged the poles over. "What I was thinking about was
stocking some fish. How the hell are we going to finish this thing?"
"Go
catch his horse, stupid!" His poking about was frustrating. "He
must've had blankets. And hurry."
He ran
off. And she was immediately sorry she had snapped at him. It was obvious his
leg was giving him a lot of pain. He had claimed the wound was just a scratch.
He didn't like to cause concern.
"I've
decided," he said when he returned.
"What?
Decided what?"
"I'm
going to raise some hell about this. I mean, when we took the grant we said
we'd do some fighting. In defense of law and order." He sneered his
opinion of the phrase. "But not to fight wars on our own. We kept up our
end. I didn't even cry about not getting any help the last time raiders came
over from Prost Kamenets, even if the army should've been here. But by damn,
having to fight El Murid's regulars in my wheat field, a hundred miles north of
Itaskia, is too much. I got to go down about the timber contract anyway, and
pick up some things, so I'll just go early and burn some ears. If them asses at
the War Ministry can't keep this from happening, they're going to tell me why.
In fact, I'm going to the Minister himself. He owes me. Maybe he can shake some
people awake."
"Now,
dear, don't do something you'll be sorry for." His friendship with the War
Minister was pretty insubstantial, based as it was on a few secret, illegal
favors done the man years ago. Men in such positions were notoriously short of
memory.
"I
don't care. If a citizen can't be safe at home, then why the hell pay
taxes?"
"If
you don't, you'll get troops up here quick, all right," she replied. They
rigged the litter between their horses, hoisted Preshka in.
"Well,
I'm going down. Tomorrow."
FOUR: The Narrowing Way
i) Return of the Disciple
Ragnarson
did not leave for Itaskia next morning.
He woke
to find the household in an uproar.
All his
people had spent the night at the greathouse, vainly awaiting Mocker. He
assumed Nepanthe, unwilling to let her husband out of sight, would come along
and could be put to doctoring.
He went
to see what was the matter.
Luck rode
with him in a small, left-handed way. Bevold Lif, despite his bashed head, had
risen early to go to the mill. He had started out afoot and had quickly
returned. El Murid's men were back, waiting for dawn.
Ragnarson
quietly tried to get the animals back into the cellars, the building doused
down, and weapons readied. If they had the confidence to return, the raiders
had picked up reinforcements.
As false
dawn lightened the land, he counted their horses. There were nearly thirty
surrounding the house, at a distance demonstrating their respect for the
Itaskian bow.
"You
think they'll attack?" Bevold asked.
"I wouldn't," Ragnarson replied.
"But there's no figuring those people. They're crazy. That's why they did so
well in the wars. That and being able to field every grown man. Iwa Skolovda
and Prost Kamenets have the same problem on their Shara borders. Nomads don't
have to stay home to get the crops in. And they don't use much equipment a man
can't make himself, so their cavalry doesn't need a broad peasant base..."
"That'll
reassure everybody," Elana said sarcastically. Bragi, as he aged, had
developed a tendency to lecture. "Uthe and Dahl are in the tower. U the
said to tell you they have a 'shaghun.'"
"Uhn,"
he grunted. "That's not good."
"Why
not?"
"A
shaghun's a sort of priest-knight. They're a fighting order like the Guild's
Knights Protectors. One with a group this small is unusual."
"So?"
"They're
sorcerers too. Not big-time, but they've got some magic."
"But
I thought El Murid killed all the magicians..."
"Sure!"
Ragnarson interrupted, sneering. "All that didn't get religion. You ever
hear of a priest who wouldn't make a deal with his devil to get what he wanted?
El Murid's no different. He's a politician first, same as all of them. He just
started out with ideals. After reality kicked his ass a few times, he started
compromising. The shaghun system worked for the Royalists—Haroun is supposed to
be one, but he didn't get much training before he had to run—so why not for
him?"
Bragi was
a cynic who disapproved of any organization structured for purposes other than
warfare. His opinions of governments were as severe as those regarding
priesthoods.
"What
can we do?" Elana asked.
"About
what?"
"About
this hedge-wizard, you lummox!" Mornings they both could be bears.
"Oh.
I'll have to kill him. Or give up and see what he wants. How's Rolf?"
"Still
in a coma. I don't think he'll come out."
"Grim.
Where's Mocker? And where's that shaghun? If
I'm going
to get him, I got to know where." He sent someone to get Uthe from the
tower.
Elana
started to ask why he had to do it. She knew. It was his way. The more
dangerous the task, the less likely he was to delegate it.
"Let's
go to the study," Bragi said. He had a room of his own off the main hall
where, supposedly, he attended to business. It was more a museum filled with
mementos, and a library. "I hope he stays alive long enough to tell me why
I've got El Murid's horses trampling my wheat."
"I'd
like to see him live a little longer than that." She revealed too much
emotion. Bragi frowned puzzledly, was about to ask something when Uthe arrived.
The men
went to four maps hung on a wall. One was of the west, political; another of
the Itaskian Kingdom; a third was of the landgrant with inked notations about
resources and special features. The last was of the area around the house, with
large blank borders where the forest still stood. It was to this that Bragi and
Uthe went. Haas pointed out the location of the shaghun, then of nearby horsemen.
Bragi traced an approach route with one heavy forefinger.
"Did
you see his colors?" Ragnarson asked. "Did you recognize them?"
"Yes.
No."
"Guess
we couldn't tell much anyway. Bound to have been a big turnover. Most of them
died before El Murid gave up and went home. Well, I don't know what else I can
do. Wish I'd known he was out there when it was still dark."
He
grabbed Elana, kissed her swift and hard. "Uthe, if it don't work, you
take over. Wait for Mocker. He's bound to come—though how much good he'll be I
don't know." He kissed Elana again.
ii) His regiment arrives
The
ground was cold. His leg ached. The dew on the grass had soaked through
his trousers and jerkin. A breeze from the south did nothing to make him more
comfortable. His hands were chilled, shaking. He hoped they wouldn't ruin his
aim. There was little chance he would get a second shot. The shaghun would have
a protective spell ready for instant use.
A hundred
yards more, at least, before he dared a shot. And they the hardest since he had
slipped out the tunnel from the cellars. There was no cover but a fencerow.
Where was
Mocker? he wondered.
The yards
slowly passed under his belly. He expected an alarm at any moment, or the cry
of the shaghun ordering an attack.
It was
light enough to storm the house. Why were they waiting?
From the
end of the fence he would have to trust luck to cross five yards of naked
pasture to a ditch.
They
would get him there for sure.
A sudden
outcry and stirring of horses startled him. He almost let fly before realizing
the horses were moving away. He raised his head.
Mocker
had come.
And how
he had come. The column emerging from the forest, both horse and foot, was the
biggest Ragnarson had seen since the flareup with Prost Kamenets. At their
head, fat and robed in brown and astride his pathetically bony little donkey,
rode Mocker.
They were
not Royal troops, though they were disciplined and well-equipped. Their banners
were of the Mercenary's Guild. But Ragnarson knew few of their names could be
found on Guild rosters. They were Trolledyngjans.
The
desert horsemen, after first rushing toward the newcomers, retreated. Even a shaghun
was no advantage against such numbers.
Their
flight passed near Ragnarson. The shaghun, in a burnoose as dark as night, was
an easy target.
One
shaft, from a bow few men could pull, flew so swift its passage was nearly
invisible. It burst through the shaghun's skull.
For a
long minute Bragi watched the riders gallop off.
In an
hour they would have disappeared without a trace. They came and went like the
sandstorms of their native land, unpredictable and devastating.
"Hai!"
Mocker cried as Bragi trotted up. "As always, one believed old fat windy
fool, self, arrives in nick, to salvage bacon of friend of huge militant repute
but, as customary, leaguered up by nearest congregation quadra-plegic. Self, am
thinking same should admit same before assembled host..."
"Speaking
of which," Ragnarson interrupted, "where'd you turn this crowd
up?"
"Conjuration."
The fat man grinned. "Self, being mighty sorcerer, wizard of worldwide
dread, made passes in night, danced widdershins round yew tree, nude, burned
unholy incense, called up demon legion..."
"Never
changes, does he? Blows hard as a winter wind."
The
speaker was a man even more massive than Ragnarson, mounted on a giant gray. He
had the shaggy black hair of a wild man, and behind his beard a mass of dark
teeth.
"Haaken!
How the hell are you? What you doing here?" Haaken Blackfang was his
foster brother.
"Been
recruiting. Headed south now." Without alcohol in him Blackfang was as
reticent as Mocker was loquacious.
"Thought
that was where you were. With Reskird and Rolf. Speaking of Rolf, he turned up
yesterday, three quarters dead, with that gang after him."
"Uhn,"
Blackfang grunted. "Not good. Didn't expect them to get excited this soon.
Figured another year."
"What're
you talking about?"
"Rolf's
job to explain."
"He
can't. Might never explain anything. Mocker, did you bring Nepanthe? We need
medical help."
Before
the fat man could reply, Blackfang interjected, "He didn't. I'll loan you
my surgeon."
Ragnarson
frowned.
"He's
good. Youngster with a case of wanderlust. Now then, where to settle this lot?
Looks like your fields have been hurt enough."
"Uhn.
East pasture, by the mill. I want my animals near the house till this blows
over." He wondered if there would be room, though. Blackfang's baggage
continued rolling from the forest, wagon after wagon. This looked like a
volkswanderung. "What you got here, Haaken, a whole army?"
"Four
hundred horse, the same afoot."
"But
women and children ..."
"Maybe
word hasn't filtered down. There's trouble in Trolledyngja. Looks like civil
war. The Pretender's grip is slipping. Fair-weather supporters are deserting
him. Night raiders haunt the outlands. Lot of people like these, whether they
favor him or the Old House, don't want to get involved."
A similar
desire, after their family had been decimated in the civil war that had given
the Pretender the Trolledyngjan throne, had driven Ragnarson and Black-fang
over the Kratchnodians years ago.
"Had
a letter from the War Minister a while back," said Ragnarson. "Wanted
to know why there hadn't been any raids this spring. He thought something like
Ringerike might be shaping up. Now I understand. Everybody stayed home to keep
an eye on the neighbors."
"About
it. Some decided to try their luck with us."
"What
about the Guild? They won't like you showing their colors. And Itaskia won't
want Trolledyngjans roving round the countryside."
"All
taken care of. Fees paid, passes bought. Every man's a Guild member. At least
honorarily. Doing everything by the book. We can't leave any enemies behind
us."
"Will
you explain?"
"Later,
if Rolf can't. Shouldn't we put the doctor to work?"
"Right.
Mocker, take him to the house. I'll help Haaken get his mob camped. You travel
all night?"
"Had
to to get here in time. Thought about sending the horse ahead, but they
couldn't've gotten here before dark last night, and I didn't figure anything
would happen till morning."
"True.
True. You're a welcome sight."
iii) Missive from a friend
Rolf came
round briefly while the surgeon, who doubted there was much hope, was removing
the arrow. He had ridden too far and hard with the shafthead tearing his
insides.
Preshka
saw the anxious faces. A weak smile crossed his lips. "Shouldn't have...
left," he gasped. "Stupid... Couldn't resist... one more try
..."
"Be
quiet!" Elana ordered while fidgeting, trying to make him more
comfortable.
"Bragi...
In kit... Letter... Haroun..." He passed out again.
"Figures,"
Ragnarson grumbled. "This much going on, couldn't be anyone else. Haaken,
you feel like explaining?"
"Read
the letter first."
"All
right. Damn!" He didn't like this mystery piling on mystery, and nobody
leaking any light. "I'll hunt the thing up. Meet me in the study."
The
country, Haroun's letter began, is Kavelin in the Lesser Kingdoms, among the
easternmost of these, against the Kapenrung Mountains where they swing
southwest out of the Mountains of M'Hand, and therein borders on Hammad al Nakir.
In the southwest Kavelin is bounded by Tamer ice, in the west by Altea, and in
the northwest and west by Anstokin and Volstokin. (I am assembling a portfolio
of military maps and will get them to you when I can.) El Murid is an enemy, of
course, though there has been no action since the wars, which Kavelin survived
virtually unscathed. Altea is traditionally an ally, Anstokin mostly neutral.
There are occasional incidents with Tamerice and Volstokin. The most recent war
was with Volstokin.
Governmentally,
this is a parliamentary feudality, power balanced between the Crown and barons.
In force of arms the latter outweigh the Crown, but internecine
intrigues dissipate the advantage. Under the current, mediocre King, the Crown
is little more than an arbiter of baronial disputes. Although, unlike Itaskia,
Kavelin has no tradition of intrigue for the throne, a struggle for succession
is taking shape. There is a Crown Prince, but he is not the King's son. By
listening at the proper doors one learns that the genuine prince was kidnapped
on the day of his birth and a changeling substituted.
Historically
and ethnically Kavelin is even more muddled than the usual Lesser Kingdom. The
original inhabitants, the Marena Dimura, are a people related to those of the south
coastal kingdoms of Libiannin, Cardine, Hellin, Daimiel, and Dunno Scuttari.
They form the lowest class, the pariahs. Only the most lucky (relatively) are
so well off as to be slaves, bond-servants, or serfs. The majority run wild in
the forests, living in a poverty and squalor that would shame a pig.
When,
between 510 and 520 in the Imperial dating, Ilkazar occupied the region,
Imperial colonists moved in. Their descendants, the Siluro, today form that
class which manages the daily work of government and business. They are
educated, officious, self-important, and schemers of the first water, and
through their hands flows most of the wealth of the kingdom. A lot, in the form
of bribes, sticks.
In the
last decade of the Imperial era, about 608, when Ilkazar crossed the Silverbind
in the north and Roe in the east, whole villages of Itaskians were transported
to Kavelin in what has been called the Resettlement. These people, the Wessons
(most came from West Wapentake), still speak a recognizable Itaskian and
constitute both the bulk of the population and of the peasant, soldier, and
artisan/merchant classes. As with Itaskians, they are stolid, unimaginative,
slow to anger, and slower to forgive a wrong. Their leqders still resent the
Resettlement and Conquest and scheme to set those right.
The final
group are the Nordmen, the ruling, enfiefed class. Their ancestors were
proto-Trolledyngjans who came south with Jan Iron Hand for the final assault on
Ilkazar. They decided life as nobles in a southern clime was better than
going home to become commoners again in the icy North Waste. Can you blame
them?
Everyone
does. It has been centuries since the Conquest and still all three lower groups
plot to topple the Nordmen. Add to actions forwarding these schemes the almost
constant state of warfare among the barons, and the problem of the succession
(for which several candidates have begun to vie), and you see we have an
interesting political situation.
Native
industries include mining (gold, silver, copper, iron, emeralds), dairying
(Kavelin cheese is famous south of the Porthune), and a modest fur trade. Economically,
Kavelin's major importance is its position astride the east-west trade route.
The fall of Ilkazar and subsequent drastic climatic changes in Hammad al Nakir
forced the movement of trade northward. Kavelin became its benefactor by virtue
of controlling the Savernake Gap, only pass through the Kapenrung Mountains
connecting with the old Imperial road to Gog-Ahlan, which is the only developed
way through the Mountains of M'Hand south of the Seydar Sea. Mocker is familiar
with the eastern trade; he can explain more fully than I. He was in both
Kavelin and the east before the wars.
Do you
see the potentialities? Here is a kingdom, rich, yet small and relatively weak,
beset by enemies, ripe for internal strife. If the King died today, as many as
twenty armed forces with different loyalties might take the field. Most would
be pretenders, but the Queen would attempt to defend her regency, and
independent Siluro, Wesson, and even Marena Dimura units, under various
chieftains, might align themselves with men they felt likely to improve their
lot. Moreover, nobody would dare go all out because of greedy neighbors.
Volstokin, especially, might loan troops and arms to a favorite.
Inject
into all this a Haroun bin Yousif, with my backing. (El Murid, much as he may
want to, will not dare interfere directly in Kavelin's internal off airs. He is
not yet ready to resume the wars, which would be the inevitable result of his
interference with a Western state.) Add a Bragi Ragnarson with a substantial
mercenary force.
There
would be battles, shifts of loyalties, a winnowing of pretenders. By proper
exploitation we should not only become wealthy men, but find a kingdom in our
pockets. In fact, I genuinely believe a kingship to be within your reach.
Ragnarson
looked up and leaned back, fingers probing his beard. What Haroun really
thought and planned was not in the letter. He didn't explain why he offered
kingship, or reveal what he himself hoped to gain. But it would have to do with
El Murid. Bragi rose and went to the map of the west, looking for Kavelin.
"Ah,
yes." He chuckled. The mere location of Kavelin cast light on bin Yousif's
plan. It was ideally sited for launching guerrilla incursions into Hammad al
Nakir. From the border to El Murid's capital at Al Remish was less than a
hundred miles. Swift horsemen could reach the city long before defensive units
could be withdrawn from more distant frontiers.
That
country, rugged, waterless badlands in which small bands of horsemen would be
difficult to find, was suited to Haroun's style. It was the same country in
which the last Royalists had held out after El Murid's ascension to power.
Haroun's
goal was obvious. He wanted a springboard fora Royalist Restoration. Which
explained the presence of El Murid's raiders here. They wanted to spoil the
scheme. The western states, long plagued by El Murid and weary of supporting
rowdy colonies of Royalist refugees, would, if Haroun could manage it,
gleefully support a fiat.
Haroun's
letter continued. Bragi read it out of a sense of debt to Rolf, but he had made
up his mind. Haroun would not drag him in this time. Yesterday's action, and
his wounded leg, were all the adventure he wanted. Haroun could find another
catspaw.
Haroun
always talked fine and promised the moon, but seldom came near delivering.
The only
crown Bragi felt likely to win, if he went to Kavelin, was the kind delivered
with a mace.
iv) Knives in passing
Another
dawn. Behind them the Trolledyngjan women were striking camp. Bragi, Mocker, Haaken,
and Blackfang's staff, were already under way. Uthe Haas, and Dahl, rode with
Bragi, ostensibly to help with his business in Itaskia, but, he suspected, more
as Elana's watchers. He had not had the strength to argue. His wound and
another evening of drinking had washed the vinegar out of him.
"Why
don't you just ride along till we meet up with Reskird?" Blackfang asked.
"He'll want to swap a few lies, too. Been years since we've all been
together."
Reskird
Kildragon was in the hills somewhere south of the Silverbind, near Octylya,
training bowmen for service in Kavelin. These were prosperous times in Itaskia.
Kildragon had been able to recruit few veterans. The youngsters he had
assembled were all raw, with the customary, bullheaded Itaskian predilection
for using their weapons their own ways. Bragi didn't envy Reskird his job.
"I'll
think about it." He wanted to say, "No," but he would hear about
that all the way to Itaskia. And if he indulged his emotions and agreed, he
would hear about it from Uthe. "Ought to ride ready. Might be
ambushed."
The
ambush didn't come till after he had wearied of staying alert. The least likely
place, he thought, was Itaskia itself. El Murid's men would be too obvious
there.
He
overlooked the national prosperity that had eased suspicions. He was telling
Dahl an exaggerated tale as they, Uthe, Mocker, Haaken, and two others entered
Itaskia's North Gate. The city watch had insisted that the main party remain
outside, Trolledyngjans and alcohol having a reputation for not mixing.
"It
was here that business with the rats started," said Ragnarson. "When
Greyfalls tried to take over. I was over there, Mocker was up Wall that way,
and Haroun was on that roof over there..."
Someone was
watching from the same spot Haroun had occupied then, a dark-skinned man who
vanished the instant Bragi spotted him. "Watch it," said Ragnarson.
"We've got friends here."
"We'll
be all right on King's," Haaken replied.
"Damned
rules. Laws," Ragnarson growled. "Don't know if I want to see the
Minister this bad." He slapped his thigh where, till the gate guards had
compelled him to check it, his sword had hung. The only personal weapons
allowed were blades shorter than eight inches. "Wasn't this way in the old
days."
"There
was more killing then, too," Uthe observed.
"Fallacy,"
Mocker interjected. "Same number cadavers in gutter mornings, now as
then. Holes just smaller. Self, if decide man wants murdered, will dispose of
same. Can exterminate with hands, ropes, rocks, bludgeons..."
"Maybe,"
Uthe replied, "but it's inconvenient, not being able just to grab a sword
and stick him."
They
crossed Wall Street and entered King's, a busy artery sweeping grandly to the
heart of the city and kingdom with identical names. Bragi had convinced his
companions that they should take rooms near the Royal Palace, where he had
business.
In New
Haymarket Square in New Town, only a few hundred yards from North Gate, the
blow fell.
Two men,
dusky and hawk-nosed, exploded from a throng watching a puppet show, hurled
themselves at Ragnarson and Mocker with daggers and screams.
The
dagger thrust at Ragnarson slid over the mail beneath his sleeve as he threw up
an arm, then slashed up his chest and along his jaw. His beard kept the gash
from being nasty. He brought his right hand across to strike back. His horse,
spo.oked, reared and neighed wildly, dumping him. As he went down he saw Mocker
doing the same, heard the screams and squeals of panicky onlookers. Then his
head hit cobblestones.
Mocker
had a moment more to react. He threw himself, robes flying, off his donkey. His
attacker plunged his dagger into an empty saddle. As the assassin bounced back,
Dahl Haas kicked him in the temple.
Mocker
came up off the pavement shrieking, "Murder!
Watch!
Help! Help!" He plumped his considerable weight atop the man Dahl had
kicked, began strangling him. "Murder! Dastardest dastard attacks poor old
mendicant in middle of street in middle of day... What kind city this where
even poor traveler is prey for assassin? Help!" Which only spurred
bystanders to flee before they themselves were butchered or nabbed as material
witnesses.
Several
city watchmen turned up with amazing alacrity—as everywhere, they were wont to
appear only after the dust settled and there was little danger to
themselves—but were unable to get through the dispersing crowd.
Haaken,
Uthe, and Blackfang's bodyguards piled onto the man who had attacked Ragnarson.
Dahl tried to control the horses while complaining that his foot hurt.
The
police finally sorted things out. A half-dozen bolder onlookers, who had hung
on for the denouement, supported Blackfang's story. Despite an obvious desire
to arrest everyone, the officers settled for two battered would-be assassins
and Haaken's promise to file a complaint.
Mocker
and Dahl then brought Ragnarson around. "Damn!" Bragi growled.
"I'm going to start sleeping in a helmet, way my head's getting smacked
anymore." He struggled to his feet, cursing the pain. Dahl and Mocker
hoisted him into his saddle. "One thing. I'm going to see the Minister
while I'm still hurting. That'll keep me ornery enough to growl him down."
"Or
get yourself thrown out," Haaken observed. "But it won't hurt to stop
off. I'll get my excuses in ahead of time. Moving that gang of mine is touchy.
Can't let them get our passes revoked. The Guild wouldn't help."
"Good
thinking. Mocker, you need to take care of anything there?"
The fat
man shrugged. "Self, always have business at Ministry of War. Ministry has
evil habit. Late payment on contracts. No interest, no penalty. Owes guineas
six hundred twelve, four and six, on salt pork supplied for winter maneuvers on
Iwa Skolovdan border. But let poor old pig farmer be hour late delivering same.
Hai! Sky falling, maybe, self thinks when agent shows up threatening
repossession of soul." He laughed. "Can have same. Is already in hock
to six devils. Take to Debtor's Court, scoundrelest scoundrels of state
collectors! See who wins case." He flashed an obscene gesture at the Royal
Palace.
v) Secret master, silent partner
The War
Minister was a small man, wizened, who had been ancient when Bragi had met him
years earlier. Now, within the plush vastness of his private office, he seemed
so small and old as to be inhuman.
"So,"
said Ragnarson. "The heart of the web. Comfortable. Good to see my taxes
well-spent." Times past, because of their nature, their conferences had
been held in less opulent surroundings.
"Rank
and privilege, as they say." The old man extended his hand.
Ragnarson
frowned suspiciously. This was going too smoothly. He hadn't been kept cooling
his heels. "You'd think I had an appointment."
"In
a sense. Make yourself comfortable. Brandy?"
"Uhn."
Ragnarson sank into a chair that threatened to devour him. He was not a poor
man, but brandy was beyond his means. "Looks like you got something on
your mind too."
"Yes.
But your business first. And pardon me for skipping the amenities. Time presses."
Ragnarson
sketched recent events.
"Oh,
my," said the.Minister, shaking his head. "Worse than I thought.
Worse. And sure to get worse still. Dear me, dear me. But they wouldn't listen.
Told me to forgive and forget, not to hold grudges."
"What're
you talking about?".
"Greyfells.
They brought him back. Inland Ministry. Wouldn't listen to me. Even moved
Customs to his control."
"What?
No! I don't believe it." The Duke of Greyfells, as near an arch-traitor as
was boasted by Itaskian history, back in favor? Astounding.
But
Greyfells was a bouncer. During the wars, while commander of Itaskian
expeditionary forces and prime candidate for supreme commander of the allied
armies, he had been in touch with El Murid, plotting treason. Only astonishing
victories by Haroun's Royalist guerrillas, with the aid of Trolledyngjan
mercenaries and native auxiliaries, in Libiannin and Hellin Daimiel, had forced
Greyfells to maintain his loyalty.
Later,
there had been plots to seize the Itaskian Crown. Greyfells, once, had been in
the succession. Haroun, Mocker, and Ragnarson had ruined his schemes. One of
the favors done the War Minister. Greyfells had renounced his place in the
succession to evade the embarrassment of a treason trial.
"Politicians!"
Bragi snorted into his snifter. The Duke kept complicating his life, and
Itaskia's, and he was getting tired of it. How many times would the man reach
for the throne?
"My
Lord the Duke has bounced back," said the Minister. "My people at
Interior think he's in touch with his old accomplice. They've struck a devil's
bargain. El Murid to support Greyfells' next power grab. And Greyfells to keep
Itaskia out of the next war, and refuse passage to troops from our northern
neighbors. You know what that means. Hellin Daimiel, Cardine, and Libiannin
still haven't recovered. Dunno Scuttari and the Lesser Kingdoms never were
powerful. Sacuescu couldn't keep a gang of old ladies from plundering the
Auszura Littoral. El Murid would be at the Porthune and gates of Octylya in a
month. There'll be a catastrophe if Greyfells has his way. And he probably
will. He grows more golden-tongued with the years. The King no longer hears his
critics."
"Then
my days are numbered," said Ragnarson. His dreams were smoke if Greyfells
was back. Inland oversaw the management of Royal Grants even when their
original issuance was under the purvue of War. Greyfells would find an excuse
to revoke his charter.
"True,"
said the Minister. "He's working on it. The raid demonstrates it. That,
which came to my attention only yesterday, was meant to rid Greyfells of a pain
in the neck, and El Murid's side of a potential thorn."
"Politics
don't interest me," said Ragnarson. "That's a well-known fact. All I
ever wanted from politicians was for them to leave me alone."
"But
there's your friend, the Royalist, and your talent for warfare. Your friend's a
threat to El Murid. That makes you a threat."
"I'm
just one man ..."
"And
not that important from where I sit. But important in some minds. And in the
mind is reality. It's no objective thing. You pose a threat if only because
they think you do. You aren't the sort who won't fight back."
"No.
Where do you stand?"
"I
always stand opposite Greyfells. And this time, behind your friend. This isn't
to leave this room. The Ministry has been making available certain aid. Funds
for which we aren't accountable, and weapons. This may have to stop. But I'll
remain behind your friend. His success would delay war, maybe prevent
it..."
The
Minister's secretary appeared. "Your Lordship, there's a gentleman who
insists on seeing this gentleman." His nose wrinkled. Ragnarson glanced
down to see if he had forgotten to shake the horse manure off his boots.
Blackfang
rolled in. "Bragi, one of my lads says they raided your place again. My people
caught them. Got most of them. What you want to do?"
For a
long time Ragnarson said nothing. Guards came to drag Blackfang away, but the
Minister shooed them off. Finally, Bragi said, "I'll let you know in a
minute. Wait outside." After Blackfang and the secretary departed, he
asked, "What would happen if Greyfells were assassinated?"
The
Minister frowned thoughtfully behind steepled fingers. "They'd want heads.
Yours if they connected you. His son would take his place."
"If
both were to go?"
"He has
four sons. Peas from a pod. Chips from the block. But it'd buy a few months.
And get the kingdom turned upside down. How many people at your place? Better
think about them." "I am."
"Something
could be arranged... If I could get them to safety?..."
"You'd
have a corpse. I hate to lose the place, but it looks like I'm damned no matter
what."
"Keeping
it could be fixed. Yourgrant runs to the river. That puts it in a military
zone. I could take it over till this blows away. I'll have to put troops in anyway,
if you and your eastern friend leave a forty-mile gap unpatrolled. If I don't,
I'll have the north woods thick with bandits from Prost Kamenets, and trade
with Iwa Skolovda cut off. But getting you, and your eastern friend, off the
hook would take some doing. You might have to stay away for years."
"I
think," said Ragnarson, "I'll have to do that anyway. To get help
reaching Greyfells." He was on the edge of decision. He knew where to buy
the knife, but the price would be playing Haroun's game in Kavelin.
"We'll
meet tomorrow, then. Where're you staying?" "King's Cross, but I may
move. We had some trouble in New
Haymarket. Greyfells might try
to have us arrested."
"Uhm.
Charge would only have to stick till something regretable happened in the dungeons.
He's foxy. All right. Wansettle Newkirk, ten in the morning. You know it?"
"I
can find it."
"Good
luck then."
Ragnarson
rose, shook the Minister's hand, joined Blackfang. He remained uncommunicative
the rest of the day.
FIVE: Their Wickedness Spans the Earth
i) But the evil know no joy
At last.
The end of a long and tiring journey. Burla glanced back to see if he had been
overtaken at the penultimate moment, sighed, slipped into the cave. His friend
Shoptaw, the winged man, greeted him with anxious questions. "Fine,
now," Burla replied with a wide, fangy grin. "But tired.
Master?"
"Come,"
the winged man said.
The old
man was solicitous and apologetic. "I'm sorry you had to go through this.
But Burla, you did me proud. Proud. How's the child?"
Swelling
in the Master's praise, Burla replied, "Good, Master. But hungry.
Sad."
"Yes,
so. You weren't prepared to bring him so far. I feared..."
Burla
laid the baby before the Master. The old man opened its wrappings.
"What's
this? A girl?" Thunderheads rumbled across his brow. "Burla ..."
"Master?"
Had he done wrong without knowing?
The old
man held his temper. Whatever had happened, it had not been Burla's fault. The
dwarf didn't have the brains. "But how?..." he asked aloud, wondering
how a counterswitch had been made. Then he looked closer. The hereditary mark
was there.
The King
had lied. To support his shaky throne he had announced the birth of a son when
a daughter had been born. The fool! There was no way he could have pulled it
off...
Realization.
His own schemes had been dealt a savage blow. A wildcat was growling in his
embrace. Willy-nilly, he had inherited the Krief's plot. "Oh, damn,
damn..."
Two days
passed before he trusted his temper enough to confront his shadowy ally. The
failure was the easterner's fault. He should have used spells to assure the sex
of the child. The old man would have done it himself had he suspected the
other's sloppiness.
But no
one accused the Demon Prince of incompetence. No sorcerer was more powerful or
touchy than Yo Hsi, nor had any had more time to perfect his wickedness. He was
an evil spanning unknown centuries. Only one man dared openly challenge the
Demon Prince, his co-ruler and arch-enemy in Shinsan, the Dragon Prince, Nu Li
Hsi. And, perhaps, the Star Rider, the old man thought, but he was irrelevant
to the equation.
The old
man, who had taken great pains to remain anonymous, was a noble of Kavelin, the
Captal of Savernake, hereditary guardian of the Savernake Gap. His castle,
Maisak, in the highest and narrowest part of the pass, had seen countless
battles fought beneath its walls. Only once had it been threatened, when El
Murid's hordes, by sheer numbers, had almost swamped it. The Wesson, Eanred
Tarlson, had prevented that. That near-defeat had led the Captal to reinforce
his defenses with sorcery.
A greater
sorcery was in the Savernake Gap now. That of Shinsan. The Demon Prince's
interlocutors had come to the Captal and found a bitter, ambitious man,
Ravelin's only non-Nordmen noble gone sour over the treatment he received in
Vorgreberg. The emissaries had tempted him with the Crown of Kavelin in
exchange for service to Yo Hsi and eventual passage west for Shinsan's legions.
Yo Hsi was ready to settle his ancient struggle with the Dragon Prince. A united
Shinsan would move swiftly to fulfill its age-old goal of world dominion.
The
Captal, from his lonely aerie, had seen little of the world but that contained
in the caravans flowing past Maisak. Since the fall of Ilkazar, the west had
been weak and divided. The major powers, Itaskia and El Murid's religious
state, were deadly enemies evenly matched. Neither showed much interest in
using sorcery for military purposes.
Shinsan
hinged its strategies on sorcery. Physical combat was a followup, to occupy, to
achieve tactical goals. Rumor whispered dreadful things of the powers pent
there, awaiting unity to release them.
The
Captal had chosen what he thought would be the winning side. Western sorcery
and soldiery had no hope against the Dread Empire.
Yo Hsi
had established a transfer link between Maisak and a border castle in his
sector of Shinsan. Th old man now used it. He bore the child in his arms.
The place
he went was dark and misty. There were hints of evils out of sight, evils more
grim than any he had created in the caverns in the cliffs against which Maisak
stood.
A squad
of soldiers, statue-like in black armor, surrounded his entry point. He could
see nothing beyond them. He, and they, might have been the entire universe.
Was Yo
Hsi expecting trouble? He had never been greeted this way before. "I want
to see the Demon Prince. I'm the Captal of Savernake..."
Not a
weapon wavered, not a man moved. Their discipline was frightening.
From the
darkness, a darker darkness still, Yo Hsi materialized. Fear cramped the
Captal's guts. The man hadn't been the same since losing his hand—though,
perhaps, the change had begun earlier, with the failure in the child's sex.
Consistency of oversight suggested that Yo Hsi was developing a godlike
self-image that underestimated everyone around him.
"What
do you want? You've dragged me away from sorceries of the highest and most
difficult sort."
His face
came visible in the sourceless light. It was drawn and haggard. The eyes were
surrounded by marks of strain. The Captal felt a new touch of fear. Had he made
an ally of a man incapable of fulfilling the scheme?
"We've
got a problem."
"I
don't have time for guessing games, old man."
"Eh?"
The Captal controlled himself. He had just learned his status in the easterner's
thoughts. "The child. Your Prince changeling. It's a girl."
The
Captal had been enthusiastic when Yo Hsi had first proposed the switch.
Couldn't miss, what with both Princes their creatures...
The Demon
Prince flew into a screaming rage.
It was
all the Captal's fault, of course. Or his minions had betrayed him, or...
After
several minutes of abuse, the old man could tolerate no more. The Demon Prince
had slipped over the borders of reason. The ship of alliance was no longer
sound. Time to abandon it and cut his losses.
With a
slight bow the Captal interrupted, said, "I see I'll find no comfort in
the source of our embarrassment. You may consider our alliance dissolved."
He spoke the word that would return him to his own dungeons.
As he flickered
away, he grinned. The expression on Yo Hsi's face!
The
moment he materialized in Maisak he initiated dissociative spells to close the
transfer stream. To pursue the discussion Yo Hsi would have to walk from the
hold of his nearest secret ally.
ii) He bears the burden of loyalty
Eanred
Tarlson was one man who never ceased worrying the mysterious exchange.
Following
his encounter in the Gudbrandsdal there was a long period for which he had no
memories. His wife, Handle, said he had lain on the borderland of death for a
month. Then, gradually, he had recovered. Six months had passed before he could
get around under his own power. Kavelin spent that time under intense pressure from
its neighbors.
At home,
in the taverns with his men, or maneuvering in the field, Tarlson never stopped
puzzling. Something kept ragging the corners of his mind. A clue that only he
held. Some memory of having encountered the old man before, long ago. But his
bout with death had left his mind unreliable.
"Maybe
it's a memory from a previous life," his wife observed one evening, a year
after the swap. She was the only one he had told. "I was reading one of
Gjerdrum's books. There's a man at the Rebsamen, Godat Kothe, who says the
half-memories we get sometimes are from other lives."
Gjerdrum
had just finished a year in Hellin Daimiel, courtesy of the Krief. Handte
Tarlson, with a thirst for knowledge and little opportunity to indulge it, had
instantly begun devouring his books.
Eanred
frowned. That reminded him of a problem he had to face soon. The Nordmen were
upset that a common Wesson, on state funds, was being sent to a university
considered a noble preserve.
It had
begun without Tarlson's knowledge, during his unconsciousness. There had been
strong opposition, which was stronger now. Gjerdrum had outperformed his
classmates. Though Tarlson felt immensely honored, he feared he would have to
ask the boy to withdraw.
He felt a
quirk of irritation. It startled him. It wasn't like him to feel antagonism
over accidents of birth. Still, they couldn't accuse him of ambition. He had
never asked honors or titles, only the opportunity to serve.
"Maybe.
But I'm sure it's a memory from this life. I'll find the handle someday."
After a long pause, "I have to. I'm the only one who. saw them all."
"Eanred,
tell the King. Don't take everything on yourself."
"Maybe."
He considered it.
Weeks
passed before he spoke with the Krief. The occasion was his induction into the
Order of the Royal Star, the Crown's household knights. The endowment was
hereditary and carried a small living.
The
Nordmen were bitter. But their opposition remained muted. The ceremony took
place in Vorgre-berg, where Tarlson was immensely popular.
He could
be put in his place when the mad King died. Afterward, in his private-audience
chamber, the Krief asked, "Eanred, how are you? I've heard the pressure's
bothering you."
"Fine,
Sire. Never better." "1 don't believe it. You showed nerves
today." "Sire?"
"Eanred,
you're the only loyal subject I've got. You're invaluable as champion, but
worth immeasurably more as a symbol. Why do you think the barons hate you? Your
very existence makes their treasons more obvious. They resist honoring you
because it makes you more prominent, makes your loyalty a greater example to
the lower classes. And that's why I refuse to let you take Gjerdrum out of the
Rebsamen." Tarlson was startled.
The King
chuckled. "Thought you had that in mind. In character. Bring me a brandy,
will you?"
While
Tarlson poured, the Krief continued, "Eanred, I don't have much time left.
Three or four years. If I do things that seem strange, don't be surprised. I'm
chasing a grand plan. So the scramble for succession won't destroy Kavelin.
Thank you. Pour one for yourself." For several minutes he sipped quietly
while Tarlson waited.
"Eanred,
when I'm gone, will you support the Queen?" "Need you ask,
Sire?"
"No,
but I don't envy you the task. My remotest cousins will be after the Crown.
You'll have no support." "Nevertheless..." He remembered his
wife's suggestion. "Maybe if we found the true Prince..."
"Ah.
You know. I guess everyone does. But it's not that easy. There're facts known
only to myself and the Queen. And the kidnappers. Eanred, the Prince was a
girl. Fool that I was, I thought we could pretend otherwise..."
: Tarlson
dropped into a chair. "Sire, I'm a simple man. This's a bit complicated
... But there's something I've got to tell you. It may help." He described
what he had seen the night of the abduction.
"The
Captal," the Krief said when Eanred finished. "I suspected it. The
creatures in the tower, you know. But I kept asking myself, what did he have to
gain? Now I wonder if he was a willing accomplice, or under duress? I've no
ideas about your attacker. He must've been a Power..."
"You
haven't investigated?" The puzzle had been answered. The old man had been
the Captal of Savernake. Eanred had seen him briefly during the wars.
"I
had my reasons. For now I have a son, though he'll never be King. Meanwhile, I
keep hoping there'll be an acceptable heir..." For a moment his face
expressed intense anguish. "The girl's no more my blood than the
changeling."
"Sire?"
"Don't
know how it was managed. But I didn't father the child. Haven't had the
capacity since the wars. No need to be shocked, Eanred. I've managed to live
with it. As has the Queen, though she wasn't told till recently... I'd run out
of excuses. And it was time she knew. She might find a way to give me an heir
before it's too late." He smiled a tight, agonized smile.
"I
doubt it, Sire. The Queen..."
"I
know. She's young and idealistic... But a man has to live by his forlorn,
twisted hopes."
Tarlson
shook his head slowly. More than the knighthood, the Krief's confessions were
honors that showed the high esteem in which he was held. He wished there was
something he could do...
He
returned home in a dour, bitter mood, silently cursing Fate, yet with a renewed
respect for the man who was his lord and friend. Let the Nordmen call him
weakling. The man had a strength they would never understand.
iii) She walks in darkness
Three
times emissaries of the Demon Prince came to Maisak. Each time the Captal sent
them home with polite but firm refusals. Then he heard nothing for a long time.
He
considered going to the Krief. But temptation called. He might stumble into
something yet...
News
came, whispering on demon wings, of a great thaumaturgic disaster. It stirred
awe and fear among sorcerers throughout the west.
Yo Hsi
and the Dragon Prince had been destroyed. In his hidden fortress deep in the
Dragon's Teeth, the sorcerer Varthlokkur, the murderer of Ilkazar, had stirred
and twitched and lashed out with unsuspected power.
The
Captal, like sorcerers everywhere, retired to his most secure fastness to cast
divinations and lay a wary inner eye on the Power in the north. The
possibilities were unimaginable. The Empire Destroyer loose again. What would
he do now?
And what
of Shinsan? Nu Li Hsi's heir-apparent was a crippled child, incapable of
holding the Dragon Throne. Yo Hsi's daughter was a postulant of a hermitic
order, uninterested in her father's position and power... Would Varthlokkur
seize Shinsan before the Tervola could select an Emperor?
Across
the west, sorcerers gathered their strength, saw to their defenses.
And
nothing happened. The Power in the Dragon's Teeth quietly faded away. The
Captal's probes sensed only patient waiting, not ambition, not gathering
sorcery.
Nor were
there thaumaturgic hostings in Shinsan. Both successions proceeded smoothly.
He
returned to his experiments.
She came
at night, under a full moon, three years to the day after the baby change. In
her train were imps and cockatrices, griffins, and a sky-patrolling dragon. She rode a milk-white unicorn.
She was
the most beautiful woman he had ever seen. He loved her from the beginning.
Shoptaw
roused him from slumber with the news.
"Has
the alarm been given?" he asked.
"Yes,
Master."
"What's
the matter?"
"Great
magic. Terrible power. Many strange beasts. Men without souls."
"You've
been to see them?"
"I
flew with five..."
"And?"
A pang of distress. "Someone was hurt?" He loved his creations as a
man loved his children.
"No.
Very frightened, though. Not get close. Great winged beast, eyes and tongue of
fire, large as many horses..."
"A
dragon?"
Shoptaw
nodded.
Dragons
were incredibly rare, and sorcerers who had learned dragon mastery rarer still.
"They didn't act hostile?"
"No."
But the winged man drew his crystal dagger.
The
Captal's gaze wandered its edges and planes. There was a glow almost
indiscernable.
"No
inimical intentions," he translated. "Well, let's have a look at
them."
She was a
half-mile away when first he spied her, a glowing point below the circling
dragon. He recognized the unicorn, was awed. Unicorns, he had on high
authority, were extinct.
"Mist,"
he whispered once she had drawn closer. "Yo Hsi's daughter."
She
stopped before the gate, showed the palms of both hands. The Captal smiled. He
knew the gesture was empty if she intended evil.
Yet it
was a gesture. No sense antagonizing her when she had Shinsan's best at her
back. A fight would be hopeless. He would last barely long enough to send a
message to Vorgreberg.
He
delayed the message pending outcome of the parlay.
She
understood his position. She did not ask that he admit anyone to his fortress.
"I've come to discuss a matter of mutual interest." Her bell-like
voice turned his spine to water.
"Eh?"
Her beauty was totally distracting. "You had an arrangement with my
father. I want to renew it. He gawked.
She
descended from her exotic mount, said something to one of her captains. The
soldiers of Shinsan began pitching camp with the same precision shown in
everything they did. Among the imps there was an increase in erratic, chaotic
behavior.
The
Captal found his tongue. "I'd heard you weren't interested in the Demon
Throne." He glanced at the unicorn. "But I've heard other tales that,
obviously, were unfounded."
She
rewarded him with a melting smile. "One must create images to survive a
heartbeat from a throne. Had my father believed me interested, he'd've had me
killed. The greater the power, the greater the fear of its loss."
"The bargain with your father," the Captal said, after he and the
woman had made themselves comfortable inside, "became untenable when he
lost touch with reality. He made grave errors and blamed them on others."
"I
know. And I apologize. He was a brilliant man once. I think you'd find me a
more compatible partner." Oh, the suggestiveness she put into her words!
"Show me the profit. You have the Demon Throne, but do you have its power?
Dare you look beyond your borders? The Dragon Prince, too, had an heir."
"O
Shing? I haven't run him to ground yet, but it's only a matter of time.
"Tervola have
declared." The Tervola
were the sorcerer-generals who
commanded Shinsan's armies.
Traditionally, they gave no loyalties to anything but Shinsan itself. "Not
many yet. Lords Feng and Wu support O Shing. Lord Chin has declared for me. You
see that I've captured his token." "The dragon?"
"Yes."
"Uhm.
And the unicorn? I'd thought the beast pure fable."
"They're
rare. Rarer than dragons. But there'll always be unicorns while there're virgins—though
we're rarer than dragons too."
The
Captal stirred nervously. "You're not one of those... those whose power
depends on..."
Her
perfect lips formed the tiniest pout. "Sir!" Then she laughed.
"Of course not. I'm no fool to hinge my strength on something so easily
lost. I'm as human as any woman."
The old
man felt a twinge of envy for the man who would first reach Mist's bed. "What's
your offer?" he asked. "The same as my father's. But I won't cheat
you." He was hooked, but he continued to wriggle. "What're your
plans?"
"I mean to test my power. On Shinsan's borders
there're a few small kingdoms that have been troublesome. And I'll finish O
Shing." "And then?"
"Then
the great eastern powers. Escalon and Matayanga."
"Ah?"
She was ambitious indeed, though only to fulfill what Shinsan considered its
destiny. And he saw an opportunity to hedge his bets. "I might be
interested. But you haven't convinced me. If you succeed in Escalon, then I'll
commit myself." Escalon commanded sorceries as powerful as those of
Shinsan.
Mist
wanted to reopen the transfer link. She had a friend in the west, an Itaskian
named Visigodred. His residence was far from the focus of events and he was
completely apolitical. She would leave control of the link in his hands.
iv) Mistress of the night
She
looked seventeen. An enemy might have suggested nineteen. But she was old
beyond the suspicions of all but the Tervola. She had been an apparent
seventeen when Yo Hsi had engineered Varthlokkur into destroying
Ilkazar.
She herself was unsure of her age. She had spent centuries cloistered from the
temptations of life and power...
Yo Hsi
had never forgotten that he and Nu Li Hsi had usurped their father, Tuan Hua.
He had always anticipated his own usurpation by descendants... Males he had had
murdered at birth. Mist had been allowed life on her mother's promise that she
would spend her existence confined to a nunnery.
Survival
had been the obsession of her early existence. She had done everything to
assure her father that she had rejected ambition.
She
succeeded. And cozened him into placing upon her the sorceries yielding eternal
youth.
Those
victories won, she turned to sorcerous self-education.
With the
centuries never ending there was time to learn cautiously, by nibbles, without
being obvious. By the time she was exposed she had become as powerful as any
Tervola. The Power was in her blood. Still she showed no ambition beyond the
scholarly. Her father chose not to destroy her.
But she
had ambitions. And patience. Varthlokkur and the destruction of the Empire had
shown her that Yo Hsi contained the seeds of his own destruction. She needed
but wait.
Varthlokkur
had come to Shinsan as a child, a fugitive full of hatred. The master magicians
of Ilkazar, trying to evade a prophecy that from a witch would spring the
Empire's doom, had burned his mother. Yo Hsi had undertaken his education,
forging a weapon with which to demolish the one power capable of challenging
Shinsan. But he had not supervised the boy's education himself. He had left
that to the Tervola. They had seen no reason to keep him from meeting Nu Li Hsi
as well.
Each
Prince had thought to use him against the other. He had shaken their mastery,
after crushing Ilkazar, and had hidden in the Dragon's Teeth. When, after
centuries, they had striven to regain control, he had trapped them both...
Mist had
ascended the Demon Throne without risk or effort. Only a little muddying of the
thaumaturgic visions of her father and Nu Li Hsi. Just enough to hasten them to
their fates.
The
conquest of Escalon appeared easy. She needed but overwhelm the magic of the
Monitor and Tear of Mimizan. O Shing was on the run. Her back was clear.
Appearances
were deceiving. Escalon controlled more Power than she expected, and O Shing's
weakness was the pretense of the broken-winged pheasant.
He struck
while she was committed in Escalon, during the height of a battle. Only the
greater threat of an Escalonian offensive saved her by forcing him to assume
control of the armies.
Mimicking
O Shing's game, she struck back while he was involved in a gargantuan operation
against the Monitor. She forced another change of command, resumed control of
the adventure she had initiated.
In
Escalon she captured some western mercenaries. Among them were interesting
brothers named Turran and Valther, minor wizards who had been involved in the
affair that had led to her father's doom. They seemed to have no particular
allegiance to Escalon, and no love for Varthlokkur, whom she would have to face
someday. She took them into her growing coterie of foreign followers.
The
Tervola issued dire warnings about foreigners. She ignored them.
The
younger brother, Valther, caught her fancy. He was a pleasant, witty man, sharp
of mind, always ready with a quip or tall tale. And he was impressed by her
looks. Most men were terrified of what she was.
It
developed so subtly that neither recognized more than a surface involvement.
They hawked together in lands far from the war, danced on mountaintops deep in
Shinsan, skipped through transfer links to cities and fortresses unknown
outside the Dread Empire. She showed him the fains and shrines of her father
and grandfather, and let him join the hunt for O Shing.
But there
was the war, her war, that had to come before all else, that would mean loss of
the Demon Throne if she failed.
The bond
developed, deepened. The Tervola saw, understood, and disapproved.
There
came a night of rites and celebration before the final assault on Tatarian. Spirits
were high. O Shing seemed broken. Escalon had little power left... Over the
objections of her generals, she invited Turran and Valther.
:Her
pavilion, huge and rich, had been erected within sight of Tatarian's defensive
magicks, and everything in it had been plundered from Escalon. Mist meant to
accept the Monitor's surrender there, in humiliating circumstances. He had
caused her untold unhappiness.
"Valther,"
she said, when he and Turran arrived, "come sit with me."
The man
flashed a broad smile. The demon-faced visors of sullen Tervola tracked him
like weapons. His brother sent a dark look after him. Valther sat, leaned
close, whispered, "My Lady looks radiant tonight. And ravishing. Good
news?"
She
flushed slightly.
The
entertainment began. Musicians sounded their instruments. Escalonian dancing
girls came in. Valther clapped to the music, ogled them unabashedly.
The
Tervola remained stern. One departed.
Mist watched
with angry eyes. She foresaw difficulties, a possible power struggle. She held
the Demon Throne only by grace of these dark, grim men hiding behind obscene
masks.
Did they
think she would be a puppet?
She found
her hand in Valther's, begging support.
Another
of the Tervola departed.
She had
to improve her position. How? Only something swift and savage would impress
these cold old men.
The
evening progressed lugubriously, fatefully, tension building with each new
entertainment. Tervola continually departed.
They were
sending a message she refused to heed.
Experimentally,
clumsily, she responded to Valther.
More
Tervola left. Piqued, she allowed Valther more liberties.
Who were
they to approve or disapprove? She was the Demon Princess...
She drank
a lot.
She
forgot the war and her responsibilities, relaxed, devoted herself to enjoyment.
In
Shinsan hedonism was forbidden. From bottom to top in that chill culture each
person had a position and purpose to which unswerving duty was obligated.
But she
behaved like a romantic teenager, caring about nothing.
Finally,
just one grim, pale-faced man remained. Valther's brother. And Turran obviously
wished he were elsewhere.
The
Escalonian captives, entertainers and servants, also wore expressions of
desperation.
"Out!"
she screamed. "All of you, out of my sight. You cringing lice!"
As Turran
left, he sent his brother a look of mute appeal. But Valther was busy tickling
a toe.
Damned
Tervola! Let them frown behind their devil masks! She was her own woman.
Never a
word was said, but, next morning, she realized everyone knew, from the mighty
to the spearmen.
When the
Escalonian dawn painted her pavilion with bloody rays, her unicorn was gone.
Before
she could be challenged, she unleashed the assault on Tatarian, following a
suggestion a helpful Valther had whispered deep in the night.
The city
that had held so long collapsed in hours.
The
Tervola were impressed.
v) Their heads meet, and they spark wickedness
The
defense of Escalon had collapsed. Tatarian lay in ruins. Mist, though still
unable to claim victory over O Shing, eyed Matayanga.
It was
time the Captal decided.
Mist had
come to visit often. His infatuation had grown to the proportions of the great
romances. Yet he prided himself on being a hard-nosed realist. He considered
facts and acted accordingly, no matter the pain.
But he
had a blind spot. The child from Vorgreberg.
They had
given her the name Carolan, but the nickname Kiki had attached itself. Shoptaw
and Burla, her constant companions, preferred the latter. She was a
bright-eyed, golden-haired imp, all giggles and bounce. She was happy,
carefree, yet capable of seriousness when discussing her destiny, which the
Captal had never hidden.
The old
man could not have loved her more. Everyone loved her... And spoiled her. Even
Mist.
The
winged man brought Kiki. The Captal smiled. He no longer worried about himself,
he worried about Kiki. Should he subject a child not yet six to the torments of
a play for Kavelin's throne?
"It's
about Aunt Mist, isn't it Papa Drake?" she asked, eyes disconcertingly
big.
"Yes.
The thing in Escalon's done. We've got to decide about Kavelin."
She
placed her hands on his.
"We've
got to figure what's best for you."
"I
thought you wanted ..."
"What
I want isn't important. I've got Maisak. I've got Shoptaw and Burla. And
you." The winged man stirred embarrassedly. The Captal reddened. He had
begun to understand the costs of Vorgreberg. "But you.. .got to do what's
best."
"Why
don't you talk to Aunt Mist?"
"I
know what she wants."
"Talk
to her anyway. She's a nice lady." Carolan had her determined face on.
"But sometimes she's spooky."
The
Captal laughed. "She's that. I'll see if she's got time to visit."
She was
there in hours.
The
Captal generally greeted her with some small flattery. This time she looked
terrible.
"What's
happened?" he asked.
She
collapsed into a chair. "I was a fool."
"You
won, though."
"And
came out too weak to go on. Drake, O Shing's pet Tervola, Wu, is a demon. A
genius. They almost overthrew me..."
"I'd
heard. But you came back."
"Drake, legions are fighting legions. Tervola are
fighting Tervola. That's never happened before. And Escalon... The Monitor was
stronger than I thought. All I won was a desert. He even got the Tear of
Mimizan out before the collapse. And a quarter of Shinsan is as lifeless as
Escalon. I'm losing my grip. The Tervola are having second thoughts. They would've
abandoned me already, except 1 managed a coup in the attack on Tatarian."
Once again, it seemed, he had joined a loser. "So you want the Gap as
bride-price for their support?" She smiled weakly. "I don't blame
you. No more than the Tervola. We respect strength and ability. In your place,
I'd wonder about me too."
The
Captal chuckled nervously. She had read his mind. "Can I sweeten the
partnership?" So she was weak. Desperately so. "No Escalon. No
conquest outright. Hegemony and disarmament. Suzerainty without
occupation..."
"A
return to Empire?" she asked. "With Shinsan replacing Ilkazar?"
"Any
rational man could see we need unity. The problem is questions of local
sovereignty."
"And
how would you enforce my sovereignty?" The old man shrugged. "I'm not
worried about the mules, just about loading the wagon. Agree in
principle?" "All right. We'll manage something. What about
Kavelin?"
"The
King's sick. He'll go soon. The scramble's about to begin. The barons are
forming parties. Breitbarth looks strong. El Murid and Volstokin are
interested. Which means Itaskia and Altea and Anstokin... Well, you see the
possibilities. I'm sending my winged men to watch my neighbors. I should send
them farther afield, to where the real plotting will take place."
"And Carolan?"
"I
don't know. 1 want to protect her." "So do I. But you'll need
support. She's the tool you'll have to use."
"1
know. I know. A quandary. That's why I asked you here. She insisted I talk to
you."
"Why
not ask her what she wants? She's got her feet on the ground. She's thought about it
" Carolan wanted to be Queen So the Captal chose to betray his homeland
for the sakes of a six-year-old and a woman who should have been his enemy.
SIX: The Mercenaries
i) A matter of discipline
"Looks
just like army," said Mocker, as he and Ragnarson descended the slope of
the valley where Blackfang and Kildragon had established their training camp.
The River Porthune was near, and beyond it, Kendel, northernmost of the Lesser
Kingdoms.
They were
a week behind Blackfang. It had taken Bragi that long to conclude his business
and convince Uthe that he and Dahl dared return to Elana unaccompanied. He had
finally explained the situation fully, trusting Uthe's discretion. Even then
Bragi had been forced to compose a long explanatory letter admonishing Elana
and Bevold to cooperate with the Minister's agents.
"Uhn."
Ragnarson grunted. "A baby one. Or an overgrown street gang." He had
been sour for days. First, Mocker had insisted on coming south. Bragi would
rather he were in charge at home. Elana was unpredictable. Bevold had no
imagination. And the two were sure to feud.
His last
hope of evading the Kavelin committment had evaporated when Royalist rowdies,
at the gate of Itaskia's citadel, had murdered Duke Greyfells.
The shock
waves were still rattling windows and walls. A quiet little war between
Haroun's partisans and those of El Murid, in the ghetto, was no cause for
excitement. But an assassination...
Half of
Itaskia had gone into shock. The other half had gone on a witchhunt.
"Look
what Reskird's recruited. Children." Ragnar-son indicated a line of young
swordsmen being drilled by a grizzled veteran.
"Self,"
Mocker observed with a chuckle, "remember boy from icy northland, big as a
horse, bald-chinned ..."
"That
was different. My father raised me right."
"Hai!"
Mocker cried. "'Raised right,' says he. As reever, arsonist, Her in
ambush..."
Bragi was
in no mood for banter. He didn't argue. He continued surveying the encampment.
The area occupied by Kildragon's trainees pleased him. They had even put up a
log stockade behind a good deep ditch.
But the
Trolledyngjan camp was a despair. He had seen better among savages. This had
come on recently, too. There had been no sloppiness when they had camped at his
place.
"The
families. We'll have to do something, or there'll be trouble. First time some
girl gets caught in the puckerbushes with an Itaskian..."
"Self,
am no expert... Hai! Such strange expression. Am, admittedly, expert in most
things, being genius equal to girth, but even for genius of such breadth, self,
all things not known. But don't tell. Public thinks fat old reprobate
infallible, omniscient, near divine in wisdom."
"How
about turning your omniscience to the point?"
Mocker
did so, but Ragnarson paid little attention.
They
entered the Trolledyngjan encampment. Ragnar-son's nose rose. Trolledyngjans
were notoriously undisciplined and unfastidious, but this much filth meant
deep trouble and a lack of leadership.
He heard
angry voices. "May get to try your suggestion."
"Uhn,"
the fat man grunted. He, too, had been surveying the surly faces watching from
tents and wagons. "Self, will keep hand to hilt."
The
voices proved to be those of Blackfang and a large, brutish young man,
arguing amidst a mass of grumbling Trolledyngjans. With Mocker's donkey in his
wake, Bragi forced his mount into the press.
The
onlookers moved reluctantly, with hard glares. How could Haaken have let it go
this far?
Ragnarson
thundered. "What the hell is this, Black-fang? A pigsty?" He studied
the man facing his foster brother.
A brute.
A young swine. But that was more in mind and manner than appearance. Not too
bright, greedy, and a catspaw, Ragnarson guessed.
Blackfang
saluted, replied, "A bit of difficulty explaining something, sir. Some
folks think we ought to be raiding, not running off to some bird-in-the-bush
Lesser Kingdom."
"Eh?
What kind of fool are you? You recruit suicides? Settle it. Thrash the lout,
get this camp cleaned up, and report to my quarters."
Blackfang's
antagonist could contain himself no longer. "Who's this old swineherd
muck-mouth, and where's she get off giving orders to men?" Ragnarson wore
Itaskian dress. "Are we slaves to every eunuch who rides in?..."
Ragnarson's
boot found his mouth. He looked up from the ground puzzledly, a finger feeling
loosened teeth.
"Ten
lashes," Bragi said. "Special consideration so it won't be said I
spite the children of old enemies. But I'll hang him next time."
The man
was about to spring. Discretion bit him. He frowned questioningly.
"Up,
you," Ragnarson ordered. "Which of Bjorn Thorfinson's whelps are
you?"
"Eh?
Ragnar..."
"Ragnar?
The gall of the man. But no matter. It's an honorable name. Wear it with honor.
There's a saying, 'Like father, like son.' I hope it's not true in your case.
Blackfang, somewhere there's a man with a purse full of gold. Someone who was
poor when he left the north. Bring him when you report."
He nudged
his mount forward. Mocker followed, grinning hugely.
ii) Child with the ways of a woman
Ragnarson
had met the Trolledyngjans and Itaskians who were to be his staff. Though
Kildragon had nominal control of the latter, a question of loyalties might
arise. Most of the Itaskians were raw youths, but their officers and sergeants
were obvious veterans, and almost as obviously the Minister's hand-picked men,
detached from regular service.
But the
Trolledyngjans were the pressing problem. Their leaders were solid, experienced
men who knew the lay of things. The young men had never seen a real war. They
wanted to plunder the countryside, called wiser heads cowards for demurring.
Their exposure to Itaskian military procedures had been sketchy. Wolf-strikes
by coast-reevers gave the raiders no true picture of the capacity of the
attacked.
"Reskird,"
said Ragnarson, after a lot of useless talk, "clear your drill ground. Dig
a trench down the middle, as wide and deep as you can in two hours. Arm your
best men with shields and pikes. Scare up blunt arrows for the rest, and pad
the tips. Blackfang will attack you in the Trolledyngjan fashion. We'll give
your youngsters some confidence and knock the cockiness out of Haaken's."
Kildragon,
a dour man, replied, "Two birds, eh? Show them Itaskian firepower, they'll
lose interest in plunder. And we'll build some mutual respect."
"Right."
To the Trolledyngjan officers, Ragnarson said, "Push the Itaskians hard.
Try to break them. Straight frontal attack, no tricks. See how they stand
up..."
A racket
approached. Blackfang stalked in, pushing a scared Trolledyngjan. "Here's
our gold man," he growled. "Caught him trying to sneak into the
hills."
Ragnarson
considered the youth, who had been one of Haaken's bodyguards in Itaskia.
"Took you long enough, and then you didn't get the right one."
"Eh?
He had it when we caught him."
"When
did he get it? He was with us in Itaskia. Mocker?" The fat man nodded.
"He ever give you any trouble before?"
"No."
"Where'd
you get it, Wulf?"
The
soldier wouldn't answer.
Blackfang
drew back a fist.
"Self,"
said Mocker, "being accustomed to use of brain instead of fist, would
suggest is time for brainwork. Who does boy have for friends? Is friend
rabble-rouser? Is friend?..."
"Don't
have no friends," Blackfang interjected. "Just that girl Astrid he's
always sniffing round..."
"Ah?"
said Mocker. "Girl? Is said, 'Look for woman.' Might same be sister of
mouth-man in camp in morning? Saw same with boy on trek to Itaskia."
"Bjorn
had a daughter?" Ragnarson asked. Vague recollection of a face. Young.
What was it the Star Rider had said? Beware of the girl who acts like a woman?
"Get her."
"Never
thought about a woman," Blackfang said, leaving.
He soon
returned with a howling, kicking adolescent in tow and a group of sullen youths
trailing. "Where's her brother?" Ragnarson asked. "I want him
here too." Ragnar appeared almost instantly. "Wulf, you and Ragnar
stand back, out of the way." To Reskird, "If they move, cut them
down. Girl, shut up."
The girl
had been alternating threats, pleas, and calls for help.
"Blackfang,
watch the door. Kill anybody who sticks his head in."
His
officers stirred nervously. He was daring mutiny. "Sit down, girl,"
said Ragnarson, offering his chair. "Mocker?"
The fat
man grunted, began playing with an Itaskian gold piece taken from Wulf. The
girl watched fearfully. Sometimes the coin seemed to vanish, but reappeared in
his other hand. Over and over it turned. Droning, Bragi told his officers the
tale of how her father, while young,
r had betrayed his father to the Pretender's followers.
The coin
turned over, vanished, appeared. Ragnarson spoke of their mission in Kavelin.
He talked till everyone was thoroughly bored.
Then
Mocker took over whispering. He reminded the girl that she was weary, weary...
She had
no chance. At last Mocker was satisfied. "Has been long time," he
said, "but is ready. Ask questions gently."
"What's
your name?" Ragnarson asked.
"Astrid
Bjornesdatter."
"Are
you rich, Astrid?"
"Yes."
"Very
rich?"
"Yes."
"Have
you been rich long?"
"No."
"Did
you get rich in Itaskia?"
"Yes."
"A
man gave you gold to do something?"
"Yes."
"An
old man? A thin man?"
"Yes.
Yes."
Ragnarson
and Mocker exchanged glances. "Grey-fells."
"Sorcery!"
Wulf hissed. "It's sorcery..." Kildragon's blade touched his throat.
"Did
the man want you to cause trouble? To keep your people from going to
Kavelin?"
"Yes.
Yes."
"Satisfies
me," said Ragnarson. "You. Ragnar. Want to ask her anything?"
The boy did, and showed unexpected intelligence. He followed Bragi's lead and
kept his questions simple. It took but a few to convince him that he had been
used.
Wulf
refused his opportunity. Ragnarson didn't push. Let him keep his illusions.
"Well,
gentlemen," Bragi said, "you see a problem partially resolved. My
friend will make the girl forget. But what about the men? This can happen again
as long as we've got camp followers. I want them left here."
After the
gathering dispersed, Bragi told Kildragon, Blackfang, and the fat man,
"Keep an eye on Ragnar and Wulf. I tried to plant a seed. If it takes
root, they'll handle our problem with the Trolledyngjans."
iii) News from Kavelin
The sham
battle had been on an hour. The Trolledyngjans were getting trounced.
"My
point's been made," said Ragnarson to a runner. "The Itaskians look
good. Tell Blackfang to withdraw." As the messenger departed, a
dust-covered rider approached from the direction of the Porthune. He was a
tall, lean man, weathered, grim, who rode spear-straight. A soldier, Ragnarson
thought. A man too proud to show weariness.
"Colonel
Ragnarson?" the rider asked as he came up.
"Right."
"Eanred
Tarlson, Colonel, commanding the Queen's Own Guard, Kavelin. I have a letter
from Haroun bin Yousif."
Ragnarson
took the letter, sent a runner to prepare quarters. "Queen's Own?"
"The
King was dying when I left Vorgreberg."
Ragnarson
finished Haroun's brief missive, which urged that he waste no time moving
south. "You came alone? With trouble brewing?"
"No.
I had a squadron when I left."
"Uhm,"
Ragnarson grunted. "Well, you're here. Relax. Rest."
"How
soon can you move?" Tarlson demanded. "You're desperately needed. The
Queen had little but my regiment, and that likely to disappear if someone
spreads the rumor that I'm dead."
"The
problem of succession, eh? The changeling and the foreign queen."
Tarlson
gave him an odd look. "Yes. How soon?"
"Not
today. Tomorrow if it's desperate. If I had my druthers, not for weeks. The men are
green, not used to working together."
"Tomorrow,
then," said Tarlson, as if yielding a major point.
Ragnarson
recognized a strong-willed man who might cause problems unless things were made
clear immediately. "Colonel, I'm my own man. These men march to my drum.
I take orders only from my paymaster. Or mistress. I appreciate the need for
haste. You wouldn't have come otherwise. But I won't be pushed."
Tarlson
flashed a brief, weary smile. "Understood. I've been there. I'd rather you
took the extra days and arrived able to fight, anyway." He glanced at the
Trolledyngjan encampment. "You're bringing families?"
"No.
They're staying. Shouldn't you get some rest? We'll start early."
"Yes,
I suppose."
Ragnarson
turned to greet Kildragon and Blackfang, who were arguing as they rode up,
Haaken claiming Reskird had cheated. "Looked good. They mightdo if we can
get them an easy first fight. Any injuries?"
Headshakes.
"Just bruises, mostly egos," said Black-fang.
"Good.
We move out tomorrow. Haroun says the arrow's in the air."
Both men
claimed they needed more time.
"You
can have all the time you want. On the march. Haaken, get the families settled
in the stockade."
The
leading elements moved out at first light. By noon the rearguard was over the
Porthune.
An
officer from Kendel's army, as if by magic, appeared to lead them through back
country, by obscure ways, out of the sight of most eyes, to the Ruderin border,
where they were passed on to a Ruderiner for the march down the Anstokin border
to the River Scarlotti, over which they would ferry to Altea.
Days went
by. Miles and clouds of dust passed. Ragnarson did not push the pace, but kept
moving from dawn till dusk, with only brief pauses to eat and rest the animals,
for whom the march was punishing. Cavalry mounts were expensive. He had as yet
received no advance from Ravelin's Queen.
Ten days
into the march, in Ruderin, near the northernmost finger of Anstokin, he
decided it was time for a rest.
Tarlson
protested. "We've got to keep moving! Every minute wasted ..." Each
day he grew more pessimistic, more dour. Ragnarson had tried to get to know
him, but the man's anxieties got in the way. He grew ever more worried as no
news came north to meet them.
Ragnarson,
while his troops were involved in maintenance and training, asked Tarlson if
he would care to go boar hunting. Their guide said a small but vicious wild pig
inhabited the region. Tarlson accepted, apparently more to keep occupied than
because he was interested. Mocker tagged along, for once deigning to mount a
beast other than his donkey.
They had
no luck, but Ragnarson was glad just to escape the cares of command. He had
always loved the solitude of forests. These, so much like those around his
grant, infected him with homesickness. For the most part they rode quietly,
though Mocker couldn't stifle himself completely. He mentioned homesickness
too.
Toward
midafternoon Tarlson loosened up. In the course of conversation, Ragnarson
found the opportunity to ask a question that intrigued him.
"Suppose
we find the Queen deposed?"
"We
restore her."
"Even
if the usurper is supported by the Thing?"
Tarlson
took a long time answering, as if he hadn't considered the possibility.
"My loyalty is to the Throne, not to man or woman. But no one could manage
a majority."
"Uhm."
Ragnarson remained thoughtful. He hoped Haroun's scheme wouldn't put them on
opposite sides. Tarlson was the only Kaveliner with any military reputation,
and he clearly had the will to manage armies.
Ragnarson
wrestled serious self-doubts. He had never commanded such a large force, nor
one so green and ethnically mixed. He feared that, in the crunch, control would
slip away.
It was
nearly dark before they abandoned the hunt, never having heard a grunt.
On the
way back they struck the remnants of a road.
"Probably
an Imperial highway," Tarlson mused. "The legions were active here in
the last years."
iv) A castle in the darkness
Darkness
had fallen. There was a quarter-moon, points up, that reminded Ragnarson of
artists' renderings of Trolledyngjan warships. "What warriors," he
mused aloud, "go reeving in yonder nightship?"
"The
souls of the damned," Tarlson replied. "They pursue the rich lands
eternally, their captain's eyes fiery with greed, but the shores of the earth
retreat as fast as they approach, no matter how hard they row, or how much sail
they put on."
Ragnarson
started. This was another side of Eanred. He had begun to fear the man was a
small-minded, undereducated boor.
"Varvares
Codice," said Mocker, "same being attributed to Shurnas Brankel,
legend collector of pre-Imperial Ilkazar. Hai! They send fire arrows."
A
half-dozen meteors streaked down the night.
"Ho!
What's this?"asked Ragnarson. They had topped a rise. Something huge and
dark lay in the vale below.
"Castle,"
said Mocker.
"Odd,"
said Tarlson. "The guide didn't mention any strongholds around here."
"Maybe
ruin left over from Imperial times," Mocker suggested. There was hardly a
place in the west not within a few hours' ride of some Imperial remnant.
They drew
close enough to make out generalities. "I don't think so," said
Ragnarson. "The Empire built low, blockish walls with regularly spaced
square towers for enfilading fire. This's got high walls with rounded towers.
And the crenallated battlement didn't become common till the last
century."
Tarlson
reacted much as Ragnarson had minutes before. Mocker laughed.
The road
ran right into the fortress, which made no
sense. There were no lights, no watchfires, no sounds
or smells of life.
"Must
be a ruin," Ragnarson opined.
Curiosity
had always been a weakness of Mocker's. "We see what's what, eh? Hai!
Maybe find chest of jewels forgotten by fleeing tenants. Pot of gold buried
during siege, waiting to jump into hands of portly investigator. Secret passage
with skeletons of discarded paramours of castle lord, rings still on finger
bones. Maybe dungeon mausoleum full of ancestors buried with riches ripe for
plucking by intrepid grave robbers..."
"Ghoul!"
Tarlson snapped.
"Pay
him no mind," said Ragnarson. "Weird sense of humor. Just wants to
poke around."
"We
should get back."
He was
right, but Ragnarson, too, was intrigued. "Like the old days, eh, Lard
Bottom?"
Mocker
exploded gleefully, "Hai! Truth told. Getting old, we. Calcification of
brainpan setting in. We go, pretending twentieth birthday coming still, and no
sense, not care if dawn comes. Immortals, we. Nothing can harm."
That was
the way they had been, Ragnarson reflected.
"We
explore, hey, Hulk?" Mocker stopped his mount beneath the teeth of a rusty
portcullis.
"Go
ahead," said Tarlson. "I'm going to get some sleep."
"Right.
See you in the morning, then." Ragnarson followed Mocker into a small
courtyard.
He got
the feeling he had made a mistake. There was something wrong with the place. It
seemed to be waiting... And a little surreal, as if he could turn suddenly and
find nothing behind him.
Overactive
imagination, he told himself. Came of remembering what they had gotten into in
the old days.
Mocker
dismounted and entered a door. Ragnarson hurried to catch him.
It was
dark as a crypt inside. He pursued Mocker's shuffling footsteps, cursing
himself for not having brought a light. He bumped into something large and
yielding. Mocker squawked like a kicked hen.
"Do
something," Bragi growled, "but don't block the road."
"Self,
am listening. And trying not to be trampled by lead-footed stumbler about
without sense to bring light. Am wondering about sound heard over stampede
rumble of feet of same."
"Let's
go back, then. We can come by tomorrow."
Logic had
no weight with Mocker. He moved ahead.
So
gradually that they did not immediately realize it, light entered their ken.
Before they had advanced a hundred feet, they could see dimly, as through heavy
fog at false dawn.
"Something's
wrong here," said Ragnarson. "I smell sorcery. We'd better get out
before we stir something up."
"Pusillanimous
dullard," Mocker retorted. "In old days friend Hulk would have led
charge."
"In
the old days I didn't have any sense. Thought you'd grown up some, too."
Mocker
shrugged. He no longer was anxious to go on. "Just to end of
passage," he said. "Then we follow example of Tarlson."
The
corridor ended in a blank wall. What was the sense of a passage that went
nowhere, that had no doors opening off it?
"We'd
better go," said Ragnarson. The sourceless light was bright now. He
turned. "Huh?" His sword jumped into his hand.
Blocking
their withdrawal was a curtain of darkness, as if someone had taken a pane of
starless night and stretched it from wall to wall.
Mocker
slid round him and probed the darkness with his blade. A deep thrust got
results. Laughter like the cackling of a mad god.
"Woe!"
Mocker cried. "Such petty end for great mind of age, caught like stupidest
mouse in trap..." He charged the darkness, sword preceeding him.
"You
idiot!" Ragnarson bellowed. He muttered, "What the hell?" when
his companion seemed to slide out of existence as he hit the blackness.
"Might
as well." He hit the darkness seconds behind the fat man.
He felt
like he was tumbling down the entire well of eternity, rolling aimlessly
through a storm of color and sound underlaid by the whispering of wicked
things. It went on and on and on and... Without breaking stride he entered a
vast, poorly lighted chamber.
That
room, or hall, was an assault on rationality. The air was overpoweringly foul.
From all-surrounding, shadowed mists came rustlings, and for a moment he
thought he saw a manlike, winged thing with the head of a dog, then a small,
apelike dwarf with prodigious fangs. Everything seemed unstable, shifting,
except the floor, which was of jet, and a huge black throne carved with
exceptionally hideous designs. They reminded him of reliefs he had seen in the
temples of Arundeputh and Merthregul at Gundgatchcatil. Yet these were worse,
as if carved by hands washed more deeply in evil.
Mocker,
sword in hand, prowled round that throne. "What is it?" Ragnarson
asked, seldom having seen the fat man so upset.
"Shinsan."
They were
trapped fools indeed.
The mists
stirred. An old man stepped forth. "Good evening," he said. "I
trust you speak Necremnen? Good."
The old
man turned to the throne, knelt, touched forehead to floor, muttered something
Ragnarson couldn't understand. For an instant new mists gathered there. An
incredibly beautiful woman wavered in their depths. She nodded and disappeared.
The old man rose and turned.
"My
Lady honors me. But to business. You're going where My Lady wishes you
wouldn't. Kavelin is already too complex. Go home."
Ragnarson
retorted, "Simple as that, eh? Might interfere with your plans, so we
should turn back?"
"Yes."
"I
can't do that." His fingers, in deaf-mute signs, flashed a message to
Mocker. "I've given my word."
"I've
tried to be reasonable. My Lady won't tolerate disobedience."
"Terrible.
Hate to disappoint her."
Mocker
suddenly lunged, sword reaching.
A silvery
filament lightninged from the old man's hand, brushed Mocker's cheek. The fat
man collapsed. By then Ragnarson was moving in. The thread darted out again.
Bragi tangled it on his blade, ripped it from the old man's grasp, continued to
bore in. \
The
sorcerer sprang straight up and disappeared in the mists overhead. Bragi,
mystified, tried a few desultory sword swipes that got no result, then knelt to
check Mocker's pulse.
A
shimmering, sparkling dust drifted down upon him. When the first scintillating
flakelet touched his skin, he tumbled across his friend.
SEVEN: Into Kavelin
i) High sorcery
Ragnarson
woke with a headache like that memorializing a week-long drunk. The demoniac
whispering of his dream-haunts resolved themselves into the mutterings of
Mocker.
Their
cell was a classic, even to slimy stone walls. Beyond the rusty-barred door
stood the winged thing, dog-teeth bared, a glowing dagger in hand. Other
creatures stirred behind it, squat things heavily clothed, with faces like
owls. The winged man opened the door.
Six
owl-faces pounced on Mocker, bound him before Bragi reacted. Bellowing like a
thwarted bull in rut, ignoring the agony in his head, he grabbed two, smashed
them together, then used his fists on their faces. A neck went snap! He lifted
the second overhead, hurled it skull-first against the floor.
A tide of
weird creatures washed in. He went down. In moments he was trussed and being
carried away. He tried counting turns and steps, but it was hopeless. Not only
did his head hurt too much, his captors kept jabbing him in retribution for his
attack.
They
reached a vast room. It might have been the one where he and Mocker had been
received, with the mists removed. It was huge. Every fixture was black. The
monsters dumped him onto a stone table. He heard voices. Forcing his head
around, he saw the old man arguing with the woman in the mists. .The old man
suddenly slumped in defeat.
The
mist-woman faded. The man turned, selected a bronze dagger from a collection on
a table, faced Ragnarson, raised his arms, began to chant.
Ragnarson
noticed a pentagram chalked on the floor. A conjuration! He and Mocker were to
be delivered to some Thing from Outside. He struggled against his bonds. The
porters ignored him, nervously concentrated on their master.
A
darkness animate became pregnant and gave birth to itself in the pentagram. The
sorcerer stopped singing. Sighs escaped the creatures around Ragnarson.
Bragi
snouted, hoping to disturb the wizard. It did no good. Furious with
frustration, because his bonds would not yield, he performed the only act of
defiance left him. He spit in the eye of one of the owl-faces.
It jumped
as if hornet-stung, staggered, flailed its arms.
One
crossed the barrier of the pentagram.
It
withered swiftly, blackened. The creature screamed in soul-deep terror. The
sorcerer tried to pull it out, then to chant the demon down. 'Too late. The
owl-face was lost. The darkness in the pentagram gradually sucked it in.
The
remainder of the old man's servants fled, shrieking. Their rush washed against
and overturned the table where Bragi lay. He hit the floor hard, groaned, found
one hand had been wrenched free. And not five feet away lay the sorcerer's
dagger, that he had dropped when he had tried to save his servant. Bragi
slithered to the blade, cut his bonds, then did likewise for a Mocker whose
eyes were wide with terror.
A finger
of blackness began to leak from the pentagram where the owl-face had broken its
barrier.
The old
man had disappeared again.
Staggering
weak, Bragi and Mocker prepared to pursue his example. Mocker's gaze fell on a
table where their weapons lay. He moved to get them. His fat man's run
would have been amusing in other circumstances. He passed perilously near the
pentagram, but the darkness within remained preoccupied with its victim.
It
finished with the owl-face as Bragi and Mocker considered how best to escape,
began slithering from the pentagram, writhing like a cat getting through a
small hole.
"Self,"
said Mocker, "am of opinion any place elsewhere is better than here."
"Where's
here?" Ragnarson asked. "Maybe I could figure where I'm going if I
knew where I'm starting."
"Friend
Bear doesn't want to know," Mocker replied.
"Bullfeathers.
If you know, tell me."
Mocker
shrugged. "Are in small quill of Shinsan poked through cloth of universe
into Ruderin. Are in two places at same time, Ruderin valley and small frontier
castle in Pillars of Ivory on Shinsan border with Sendelin Steppe. Could be
long walk home if luck turns bad."
"Turns
bad?" Ragnarson snorted. "Can't be worse than it is." The
darkness still confined had grown visibly smaller. "I vote we walk while
we talk."
The
darkness chose that moment to strike. They managed to evade it and flee.
The
flight was an eon of fear, of oxygen-starved lungs and already punished muscles
refusing to be tortured more but going on all the same. Always close behind was
a snakelike black tendril.
Something
came hurtling at them. Ragnarson grabbed it, Mocker stabbed it, and together
they sacrificed it to the tendril. Only after the darkness began surrounding it
did they see that it was another of the old sorcerer's servants.
Chance
eventually brought them back to the point where their flight had begun. The
demon had evacuated the chamber completely. The uproar it had caused echoed
from corridors opening on the room.
Feeling
momentarily secure, Ragnarson prowled round the throne. "Hey," he
said suddenly. "I think I've found a way out." He had noticed that,
from a certain angle, he could vaguely discern a rectangle of darkness that
obscured the black pillars and walls behind it. It seemed the same
size as the curtain they had plunged into getting here.
"Self,
would be grateful for same," said Mocker. "Magic binding two
localities together is unraveling."
For some
time there had been a gentle trembling in the floor. Ragnarson hadn't paid it
any heed, thinking it the demon rumbling around. "What if?..."
"If
fool-headed venturers don't find exit, then long walk home from Shinsan for
same," Mocker replied.
"Here,
then. Looks like the way we came in." He ran at the rectangle. The
whirling, kaleidoscopic sensations returned. After a stench-filled eternity he
stepped into the corridor where they had originally been entrapped. Mocker
appeared an instant behind him.
They were
still trapped.
"Make
yourself comfortable," said Ragnarson, sitting with his back to a wall and
his sword across his lap. "I'm not going back through that."
"Self,
would prefer dying in west, too," said Mocker. "Though in Ruderin
back country of own stupidity? Not even battle to end heroic life with heroic
death, lots of witnesses to final bravery? Woe!"
Stone
grumbled around them. Dust fell from the ceiling.
"Sounds
bad," said Ragnarson.
"Crushed
to death. Ignominious end for great mind. Am fool. Friend should have pointed
out same, dragged fat idiot to camp kicking and screaming if needful."
"Is
the light getting weaker?"
"Verity.
Magicks devolving. Portal to Shinsan weakening also."
Indeed it
was, getting fluttery around the edges and occasionally showing a swift-running
shot of color.
"Maybe
we can get out. If the place don't fall down first."
"Maybe
so."
The
curtain winked out of existence. They found themselves staring into the
startled faces of several mercenaries. "Ghosts!" one cried.
"Boo!"
said Mocker, then cackled madly. "Out of way. Everybody's out of way
before very important head, head
of self, gets mashed by falling castle."
Fifteen
minutes later they were astride their mounts, atop a hill, watching the castle
collapse. Fogs of darkness engulfed its base, darkness untouched by the morning
sun. A plume of that blackness, like smoke, rose against the dawn and bent its
head eastward. The destruction proceeded in unnatural silence.
"Going
home," said Mocker.
"We'll
hear from them again," Ragnarson replied.
Tarlson
and Blackfang, who had been working round the rim of the valley, arrived.
"You're lucky I mentioned the castle to the guide," said Eanred.
"He said there wasn't any such place, so I scared up a rescue party."
"I'm
grateful," said Ragnarson.
They
talked at some length. When Ragnarson mentioned the winged man, Tarlson grew
silent and withdrawn.
ii) Passage to Ravelin
The march
to the Altean ferry was disconcerting. A regiment of Anstokin infantry paced
them along the Ruderin border, making no overt moves but slowing their progress
by forcing them to remain battle-ready. Crossing the River Scarlotti while
Anstokin's force maneuvered nearby was a laborious business that took two days.
Tarlson
grew jumpy as a cat. Still there were no messages from Kavelin, just rumors
relayed by Altean officers. Those were not good. Skirmishing had broken out all
over the kingdom. The Queen still held Vorgreberg, but the populace were being
whipped up by a dozen propagandists.' Lord Breitbarth, a cousin of the dead
King and the strongest pretender, was assembling a major force at Damhorst,
near the Kavelin-Altean border, where Ragnarson was expected to cross. Damhorst
lay on the great eastern trade route, which linked Vorgreberg with the Altean
capital and the coastal city-kingdoms.
Ragnarson,
too, grew concerned at the paucity of news. He had expected to hear from Haroun
by now. All he knew was what he had coaxed from the Alteans. One went so far as
to loan him a map of the border country, a violation of his orders. Though
Kendel, Ruderin, and Altea covertly supported bin Yousif's scheme, openly none
could do more than grant passage to mercenaries. There was a point, Ragnarson
saw while studying the map, where the borders of Anstokin, Volstokin, Kavelin
and Altea all came together. It was hilly country, almost without roads.
"What
I'm thinking about," said Ragnarson, meeting with Blackfang, Kildragon,
and Tarlson, "is following the highway to this town, Staake, so it looks
like I'm committed to it. Then I'll abandon the wagons, make a night march
north, and enter Kavelin through the hills above this Lake Berberich. I'll
swing around and take Breitbarth in the flank. Assuming he's surprised.
Mocker'11 let us know."
Mocker
had vanished at the ferry.
Tarlson
paced, mumbled, shook his head. "Your men are green. They won't stand up
to it."
"Maybe
not. Now's a good time to find out. I've never had much use for positional
warfare."
"Bin
Yousif's influence."
Bragi
studied Tarlson thoughtfully. How much did he know? Or suspect?
'"Possibly. I've followed his career."
"As
you said when we met, it's your command. I'll help any way I can."
"What I
want is guides. Scouts.
Woodsmen for outrunners."
"That's Marena
Dimura country. They're touchy-people. They could go either
way."
"How
do they stand on Breitbarth?"
"They'd
like his head. He hunts them like animals."
"Lesser
of two evils, then. Ride over and sign them up. Promise them Breitbarth if we
catch him."
"A
noble? You'd buy those savages with the life of a noble?"
"J
ust another man to me." He was puzzled by Tarlson's incredulity.
Eanred didn't hold the Nordmen in high esteem. "I'm not one of your
Kaveliner chevaliers. War's serious business. I fight to win."
"But
you'll unite the Nordmen against you."
"They're
unanimous already: the Queen, my employer, has to go. They're all against me
anyway." He felt like saying more, but held his tongue. They might be
enemies some day.
"All
right. I'll go."
Reliable
news awaited them at Staake, little of it good. None had come before because
Baron Breitbarth had intercepted all the messengers. But one of Tarlson's men
finally reached Ragnarson.
Breitbarth
had convinced several barons that disposing of Ragnarson was the chief
business at hand. He had gathered twenty-two hundred men at Damhorst. Further,
his claim to Kavelin's crown had been recognized by Volstokin, which threatened
intercession. There were rumors of a pact between Breitbarth and Volstokin's
King. And, grimmest news of all, Breitbarth had seized the money meant for
Ragnarson's mercenaries.
From
Vorgreberg the news was better. The Queen's Own had remained loyal, and the
Queen herself had managed to still unrest by going to the people in the
streets. But bands of partisans had begun raiding in the country.
And there
was a letter from Haroun, that came to him he knew not how. It appeared in his
tent while he was out.
It
covered the same information, in greater detail, and said more about Volstokin.
Not only
had King Vodicka made an agreement with Breitbarth, he had made another with El
Murid. After the dust had settled and Breitbarth had been crowned, Volstokin,
with aid from El Murid, would occupy Kavelin...
After
reflection, Bragi called Blackfang. "Make sure there's plenty of wood for
the watchfires. I want them kept burning all night." The Kavelin border
was just two miles away, and Damhorst only ten beyond. If his ruse were
detected, Breitbarth would soon know. He needed every minute.
iii) Saltimbanco
Moonrise
came early, just after nightfall, but it was little help, being a barely
visible slice.
"Has
Tarlson shown yet?" he asked. He had Alteans to lead him to the border,
but after that he would be on his own. Unless Tarlson turned up.
He
didn't. They had to start. It took four hours to reach the border, every minute
of which Ragnarson grew more worried. The men performed well enough, moving
excitedly but quietly. For them it was still an adventure.
Tarlson
met them at the border. "They'll help," he said, sounding surprised.
"Didn't have to promise anything. Said our victory would be reward
enough."
"Uhm."
Bragi thought he sensed the touch of Haroun. What had bin Yousif promised?
"But
we've got a problem. Two thousand Volstokiners are camped just north of here,
right over their border. Rumor is they'll move to support Breitbarth if he
needs it."
Ragnarson
wondered if he were entering a trap.
As the
night waned, his patrols reached Lake Berberich. Going slowed because of heavy
fog. He didn't know whether to curse or praise it. It slowed him, but concealed
him.
A Marena
Dimura runner, badly winded, came sprinting up the column. Tarlson translated.
"Volstokin's
moving. Their vanguard's only a mile behind us..."
Could an
oddly dressed, short fat man on a donkey, remarkable for his inability to
handle any language properly, slide unnoticed through a hundred miles of Altean
farmlands, cross a heavily patrolled border, penetrate forty miles of
soldier-dense Kavelin, then appear as if by magic on the cavern route from
Vorgreberg to the west? Mocker had his doubts. But also his years of
experience. He dropped out of sight at the
Scarlotti
ferries and reappeared days later at the hamlet of Norr, well behind the
Kavelin-Altean border.
Mocker arrived
after the men had already gone to the fields. The women were gathering at the
well. Even the youngest was a tangle-haired mess, but they were Wessons and
clean.
"Hai!"
the fat man cried, trying to look pathetic and harmless. "Such visions
eyes of poor old wanderer have not seen in age. Hand of Queen of Beauty fell
heavily on town." Suspicious eyes turned his way. "Where are menfolk?
In land of humble traveler, self, husbands never stray from sprites like
these." He tried not to wrinkle his nose as a crone smiled and shifted a
babe from breast to wrinkled breast.
"But
wait. Must observe proprieties. Must introduce self lest same be suspect for
wickedry. Am called Saltimbanco. Am student philosophic of Grand Master Istwan
of Senske in Matayanga. Am sent west on quest for knowledge, to seek same at
academies in Hellin Daimiel." Children too small to work gathered around
him. He did a ventriloquism trick and made the donkey ask for a drink. That
frightened some women and disarmed others. Then he asked a meal for himself,
for which he offered what he claimed was his last copper, and while he ate told
several outrageous lies about the shape of the earth. He then traveled on.
He
repeated the performance in every hamlet till he reached Damhorst, thus building
himself a small reputation. It was a hurry-up specter of his usual meticulous
preparation. He hoped that in the disruption no one would have time to check
his back trail.
Damhorst
was a large town with a substantial castle atop a tall hill. As happened where
armies gathered, leeches were common. One more wouldn't be noticed. A common
ground at town's center was crowded by the tents of whores, ale sellers, a
tattoo artist, fortune-tellers, amulet sellers, and the like. Saltimbanco would
fit like a fish in water.
He
arrived early. Few of his colleagues were stirring, but he quickly learned that
Bragi was approaching Staake. Mumbling, he spread a rug where he would be out of traffic, yet
could watch everything.
"Identical
spot." He chuckled. A long time ago, when he really had been coming west,
he had paused here to bilk a few Damhorsters. "And same props. Should have
thrown away, Nepanthe said. Might need someday, self replied. Hai! Here is
husband of same, in business at old stand." Around him he spread a
collection of arcana that included bleached apes' skulls and bones from
little-known eastern animals, moldy books, and glass vials filled with nasty
concoctions. "So many years. Am getting old. But bilking widows hard work
even for youngest, virilest man." He chuckled again. He had made his first
fortune in Damhorst, by making promises to a lusty young widow named Kersten
Heerboth, and had gambled it away in Altea.
He settled
against a wall, nodded sleepily. Occasionally, when a rider or lady in a
litter passed, he would lift his head to call desultorily, "Hai! Great
Lady," or Lord, "before you sits mighty thaumaturge out of
mysterious, easternmost east, with secrets of life as unlocked by mightiest of
mighty eastern necromancers. Have gold-rare vials of water of fountain of
youth, to suppliment beauty of already most beautiful damsels of glorious
Damhorst. Have potation guaranteed to banish wrinkles forever. Have cream to end
eternally ghost of whiskers on great ladies' lips. Husband getting shiny on
top? Have secretest dust, made at midnight full moon by Mata-yangan magicians,
heretofore unseen west of Necremnos, guaranteed to restore hair on statue. Just
mix same with blood of Escalonian snow snake, only furry snake in world, and
will correct same. Snake blood also available here, prepared by adepts of
bearded turtle cult deep in darkest heart of Escalon." And so forth.
It was
river water, mud, and the like, but there had been a time when he had made a
living selling it to ladies on the downhill side of thirty.
Near noon
a shadow fell on his lap, into which he stared sleepily. He looked up into one
of the nastiest faces he had ever seen. It was scarred, one-eyed, neither cleanshaven
nor bearded, and wore a grin with several teeth missing and the rest rotten.
Before he could say a word, the man left.
"Derran
One-Eye," he muttered. "Hired blade of friend Haroun." He looked
around quickly, thought he saw a familiar back vanish round a corner a block
distant. Haroun? Here? He was tempted to follow. But Haroun would contact him
if necessary.
Later, he
decided Derran's appearance was an ill omen he should have heeded. He should
have gathered his props and fled, and damn finding out what Breitbarth was up
to.
Things
soured that afternoon. A lady came by, a lady getting a bit paunchy and looking
more than a bit wealthy. She appeared a certain victim. Did he still have the
true touch? He accepted the challenge.
"Hai!
Great Lady, shadow of Goddess of Love and Beauty on Mundane plane, glow of
desire, harken to words of acolyte of greatest mage of east, self. Am in
possession of one only packet rarest of rare herbs of Escalon, well-known but
impossible of finding amantea, famous to corners of world for efficacy of
treatment of teeny, tiny bit less than perfect waistlines..."
"It's
him!" the woman shrieked. "And he hasn't changed a word. Harlin,
Flotron, seize him."
The armed
men who had been walking before and behind her sedan, puzzled, started toward
the fat man.
"Woe!"
Mocker cried, stumbling to his feet. "Of all ill fortunes," he
shouted at the sky, "of all potential evils..." He shook a fist,
gathered the skirts of his robe, and ran.
He had
been seated in one position too long. Kersten's bravos overhauled him.
"Self, should have stayed home," he moaned as they dragged him back.
"Should have listened to Nepanthe. Should have stayed pig farmer and mud
grubber. But evil gods, maybe wicked sorcerer, lured poor foolish self to
fateful appointment..."
"You've
been a long time delivering those emeralds," the woman said.
"O
Light of Life, Doe Eyes, Dove's Breast, humblest of humble cowards encravens
self. In past time, still remembered with great joy as happiest hour of otherwise
miserable life, while returning from goldsmith, self was set upon by rogues.
Fought like lion, armed with love, breaking bones, maiming, leaving five, six
crippled for life. But dagger thrust ended resistance. Still have gruesome scar on
fundament, result of same..."
"Thrash
him, boys, before he breaks my heart by telling me how he couldn't possibly
face me after losing all my money."
Harlan
and Flotron tried to follow orders, but Mocker never accepted thrashings
meekly. He got the best of it, briefly, with tricks that would have embarrassed
Derran One-Eye. But he got no chance to escape. Kersten carried more weight
than avoirdupois. Damhorsters by the dozen piled on. Soon he found himself
being hustled to the castle and its dungeon.
There he
learned things he feared he would never pass on to Bragi—because the grimmest
news was that Kersten had married Baron Breitbarth.
Hour
after hour, day after day, he sat on the straw-covered floor and mumbled to
himself about his stupidity. When self-pity grew boring, he wondered how Bragi
was doing. Well, he trusted. His companions in durance assured him that their
turnkeys wouldn't be so tight-lipped and sour were things going the Baron's
way.
iv) First blood
"Haaken!
Reskird! Close it up! Don't worry about noise. They know we're here. Move it!
They're on our ass. Eanred, ask him what's ahead."
"He
came from behind."
"He
knows the country, doesn't he?"
Tarlson
talked with the, scout.
"The
lake, he says. A talus beach on the right, narrow, along the lakeside. Hills
and some bluffs on the left. Very rugged, bushy country, full of ravines, but
not high."
"What
about this fog? Is it common? How long will it last?"
Questions
and answers, questions and answers. It went so slow. "Haaken.
Reskird." He gave orders.
The
Trolledyngjan infantry, which had been marching at the rear, began
double-timing forward. The Itaskians
crowded the edge of the road till they were
thoroughly mixed.
"Reskird!"
Ragnarson bellowed, "get those horses back. I want contact within the hour."
He galloped to the head of the column where Blackfang was replacing the
vanguard with heavily armed horsemen. "Hurry it up, damn it. If the
Volstokiners knew we were coming, so did Breitbarth. He'll be moving
north."
Back down
the line he galloped, shouting, "Move it! Move it!" at every officer
he saw. Dozens of pale, tense young faces ghosted past in the mist. He saw no
smiles now, heard no laughter. It had stopped being an adventure.
"Tarlson! Where are you? Stick close. And keep your scout. I want to know
when we get to the steepest hillsides." By the time he reached the
column's rear, Kildragon and the light horse, with a platoon of bowmen, had
faded back.
Soon he
had done all he could, and was considering prayer. He had fifteen hundred men
sandwiched between two superior, better rested, better trained forces—though as
yet he had no idea where Breitbarth was. This was not the easy battle he had
wanted for blooding.
Trumpets
sounded in the distance. Kildragon had made contact.
On the
column's right, only yards away but invisible in the mist, the lake waters
lapped gently against the shore.
"Here,"
Tarlson said at last.
"To
your left!" Ragnarson shouted. "Upslope. Move it!"
The
soldiers began climbing.
The
hills, barely tall enough to be called such, rose above the mist. In the
dawnlight Ragnarson arranged his troops in strong clumps on their lakeward
faces.
He hoped
the mist would not burn off too soon.
Reskird's
party soon passed below, invisible, raising a clatter, and moments later were
followed by a strong force of cavalry. Ragnarson signaled his officers to hold
fire.
The mist
had begun to thin by the time the enemy main force moved to where Ragnarson
wanted them. He could discern the vague dark shapes of mounted officers
hurrying their infantry companies... He gave the signal.
Arrows
sleeted into the mist. Cries of surprise and pain answered them. Ragnarson
counted a minute, during which thousands of arrows fled his bows, then signaled
a charge. The Trolledyngjans led, shaking the hills with their warcries.
Ragnarson
leaned forward in his saddle, wearily, and awaited results.
The
Volstokiners had been in good spirits, confident of victory. The sudden rain of
death had stunned them. They could see no enemies. And while trying to form up
over the dead and wounded, the Trolledyngjans hit them like an avalanche of
wolves.
The fog
cleared within the hour. Little but carnage remained. The surviving
Volstokiners had run into the water. Some, trying to swim away, had drowned.
Ragnarson's archers were using heads for targets. Trolledyngjans on captured
horses were splashing about, chopping heads. The water was scarlet.
"Won't
you take prisoners?" Tarlson asked. He spoke not a word of praise.
"Not
yet. They'd just go home, re-arm, and come back. I hope this'll put Volstokin
out of the picture."
A
messenger from Blackfang arrived. The commander of the Volstokin vanguard, some
four hundred men, stunned, had asked terms after only a brief skirmish.
"All
right," said Ragnarson, "they can have their lives and shoes. The
enlisted men. Strip them and send them packing."
I Below,
his men, tired of slaughter, were allowing surrender. "Let's see what we've
caught." He wanted to get down there before there were disputes over loot.
The Volstokiners had even brought a bevy of carts and wagons full of camp
followers.
He
dismounted and walked slowly through the carnage. His own casualties were few.
In places the Volstokiners were heaped. Luck had ridden with him again. He
paused a moment beside Ragnar Bjornson—no older than he had been in his first
battle—who grinned through the pain of a wound. "Some folks will do
anything to get out of walking," Bragi said, resting a hand on the youth's
shoulder. Someone had said the same to him long ago.
It was
terribly quiet. It always seemed that way afterward, as if the only sound left
in the world was the cawling of the ravens.
A dead
man caught his eye. Something odd about him. He paused. Too dark for Volstokin.
An aquiline nose. Haroun had been right. El Murid had advisers in Volstokin.
He shook
his head sadly. This little backwater kingdom was becoming the focus of a lot
of intrigue.
Haaken
came in with thirty prisoners and hundreds of heavily laden horses. "Got
some odd ones here, Bragi," he said, indicating several dusky men.
"I
know. El Murid's. Kill them. One by one. See if the weakest will tell you
anything." The remainder he had herded together with officers already
captured.
Volstokin
had lost nearly fifteen hundred men while Bragi had had sixty-one killed. Had
his people been more experienced, he thought, even fewer would have been lost.
It had been a perfect ambush.
"What
now?" Tarlson asked.
"We
bury our dead and divide the spoils."
"And
then? There's still Lord Breitbarth."
"We
disappear. Got to let the men digest what they've done. Right now they think
they're invincible. They've got to realize they haven't faced a disciplined
enemy. And we'll need time to let the news spread. May swing some support to
the Queen."
"And
to Lord Breitbarth. Hangers-back would join him to make sure of you. They've
got to keep the Crown up for grabs."
"I
know. But I want to avoid action for a few weeks. The men need rest and
training. Haaken! See the Marena Dimura get shares." He had noticed the
scouts, as ragged and bloody as any of his troops, lurking about the fringes,
eyeing plunder uncertainly. One, who was supposed to be a man of importance,
seemed enthralled by a brightly painted wagon filled with equally painted but
terrified women. "Give the old man the whore wagon."
That
proved a providential act. It brought him warning, next day, of a party of
Breitbarth's horses ranging far ahead of the Baron. In a brisk skirmish he took
two hundred prisoners, killed another hundred, and sent the remainder
to their commander in a panic. Tarlson said Breitbarth relied heavily on his
knights and was a cautious sort likely to withdraw after the setback. He did
so. And more barons rallied to Damhorst. Breitbarth's force swelled to three
thousand.
The
westward movement of baronial forces left partisans from the under-classes free
to slaughter one another elsewhere. More and more Marena Dimura gravitated
toward Ragnarson, who remained in the hill country near the Volstokin border,
moving camp every few days. The natives kept him informed of Breitbarth's
actions.
Those
amounted to patrols in force and a weekly sally north a day's march, followed
by a day's bivouac, then a withdrawal into Damhorst.
Ragnarson
began to worry about Mocker. He should have heard from the fat man by now.
Eanred
left him, declaring it was time to resume his command. The Queen was under
little pressure, but rumor had marauders riding to the suburbs of Vorgre-berg.
That had to stop.
It was
now an open secret that Breitbarth held the money intended for Bragi's men, but
they, fat on loot and self-confidence, weren't grumbling. Everyone told everyone
else that the Colonel would take them down to Damhorst and get it back.
EIGHT: Campaign Against Rebellion
i) In flight
The news
the Marena Dimura brought caused Ragnarson to grow increasingly unsettled.
Breitbarth grew stronger by the day. His numbers reached four thousand, many
heavily armed knights. The Baron's sallies became more daring. Ragnarson's
patrols came under increasing pressure. He had added four hundred men to his
force, but they were Marena Dimura and Wessons without training. He used them
as guides and raiders.
He began
to fear Breitbarth would split his force and move against Vorgreberg.
During
his examination of the country toward Damhorst he had found the place where he
wanted to do battle. It was on the north side of a dense forest belonging to
Breitbarth himself. It began near the Ebeler a dozen miles northeast of
Damhorst. Roads ran round both sides, from Damhorst to the town and castle of
Bodenstead, but the western route was the shortest and likeliest way Breitbarth
would come to relieve Bodenstead.
This was
gently rolling country. A lightly wooded ridge ran from Bodenstead northwest a
mile to the hamlet of
Ratdke,
overlooking plains on either side. From Boden-stead through the forest ran a
hunting trail, unsuitable for Breitbarth's knights, along which Ragnarson could
flee if the worst happened. North of the western route were thick apple
orchards on ground too soft for heavy cavalry. The baron would have to come at
him through a narrow place, under his bows.
But even
the best-laid plans, and so forth. To taunt Breitbarth, Ragnarson brought his
main force south, moving swift as the news of his coming, laying a trail of
destruction from one Nordmen castle to the next. He met surprisingly little
resistance. The knights and lesser nobility who remained in their fiefs showed
a preference for surrender to siege. The fires of burning castles and towns
bearded the horizons as Ragnarson's forces spread out to glean the richest
loot.
At first
he thought Breitbarth was practicing Fabian tactics, but each prisoner he
interviewed, and each report he received, further convinced him that the Baron
was paralyzed by indecision.
His train
and troops became so burdened with plunder that he made a serious
miscalculation. Hitherto he had kept the Ebeler, a deep, sluggish tributary of
the Scarlotti, between himself and Breitbarth. But at the insistence of his
followers, who wanted to get their loot to safekeeping with the men he had left
at Staake, he crossed the river at Armstead, a mile from Altea and just twelve
from Damhorst. It took two days to clear the narrow ford. Breitbarth missed a
great opportunity.
But the
Baron didn't remain quiescent long. When Bragi marched east into the
wine-growing country on which the Baron's wealth was based, Breitbarth came out
of Damhorst in a fury.
Whether
Breitbarth had planned this Ragnarson wasn't sure, but he did know that he had
gotten himself into a trap. This was relatively flat country, clear, ideal for
Breitbarth's knights. He had nothing with which to face those. Even the fury of
his Itaskian bows wouldn't break a concerted charge across an open plain.
He found
the eastern Ebeler fords closed and had no time to force them. Breitbarth was
close behind, his troops raising dust on all the east-running roads. There was
nothing to do but run ahead of him.
Breitbarth
gained ground. His forces were unburdened by loot, of which Bragi's men had
already re-amassed tons, and his men were fresh. In a few days his patrols were
within eyeshot of Ragnarson's rearguard.
He was in
the richest wine country now, and the vineyards, with the hedgerows around
them, reduced the speed he could make by compelling him to stay on the road.
"Haaken,"
he said as they rose on their fourth morning of flight and saw dust already
rising in the west, "we don't run after today."
"But
they've got us three to one..."
"I
know. But the more we run, the worse the odds. Find me a place to make a stand.
Maybe they'll offer terms." He had grown pessimistic, blamed himself for
their straits.
Just
before noon Blackfang returned and reported a good place not far ahead, a
hillside vineyard where Breitbarth's knights would have rough going. There was
a town called Lieneke in the way, but it was undefended and the inhabitants
were scattering.
Haaken
had chosen well. The hill was the steepest Ragnarson had seen in days, hairy
with large grapevines that could conceal his men, and the only clear access for
horsemen was the road itself, which climbed in switchbacks and was flanked by
tall, thick shrubberies. Moreover, the plain facing the hill was nearly filled
by Lieneke, which would make getting troops in formation difficult. Ragnarson
raised his banners at the hillcrest.
The
position had disadvantages. Though he anchored his flanks on a wood at his
right and a ravine on his left, neither could more than slow a determined
attack. He worried.
He stationed
every man who could handle a bow in the vineyards and behind the hedges. The
rest he kept at the crest of the hill, in view from below, including the
recruits gathered in Kavelin. He feared those, if committed, would flee under
pressure and panic the bowmen. Haaken he gave command of the left, Reskird the
right. He retained control of the men on the crest.
Breitbarth
appeared before Ragnarson completed his dispositions, but remained on the
outskirts of Lieneke. Troops began piling up in the town.
Late in
the afternoon a rider came up under a flag of truce, said, "My Lord, Baron
Breitbarth wishes terms."
So,
Ragnarson thought, the man isn't a complete fool. "I want the surrender of
himself and one hundred of his knights, and his oath that no vassal of his will
again stand in rebellion against the Queen. Ransoms can be arranged
later."
The
messenger was taken aback. At last he blurted, "Terms for your
surrender."
Ragnarson
chuckled. "Oh. I thought he'd come to turn himself in. Well, no point you
wasting your trip. Let's hear them."
Bragi was
to return all plunder, surrender himself and his officers to the mercy of
Breitbarth, and his men were to accept service in Breitbarth's forces for the
duration of the unrest in Kavelin.
They
weren't the sort of terms usually offered mercenaries. They meant death for
Bragi and his officers. No one ransomed mercenaries. He had to fight. But he
kept up negotiations till dark, buying time while his men dug trenches and
raised ramparts along their flanks. Breitbarth showed no inclination to
surround the position. Perhaps he expected a diplomatic victory. More likely,
he just did not see.
Night
brought drizzling rain. It made the men miserable, but Bragi cheerful. The hill
would be treacherous for horsemen.
Dawn
came, a bright, clear, hot summer's morning. Breitbarth ordered his forces.
Ragnarson did the same. The Baron sent a final messenger. As the white flag
came up the hill, Bragi told Haaken, "I'd better get this going before
somebody down there suffers a stroke of smarts." Breitbarth, confident in
his numbers and knights, had made no effort to surround him or get on his
flanks.
The terms
offered were no better. Bragi listened patiently, then replied, "Tell the
Baron that if he won't come surrender, I'll come down and make him." The
negotiations had given him enough insight into Breitbarth to anticipate that
the challenge, from a ragtag hire-sword, would throw him into a rage. These
Kaveliners, even his Marena Dimura, were bemused by chivalry and nobility. It
was a blind spot he meant to exploit mercilessly.
ii) Second blood
The
baronial forces stirred. At the crest of the hill, Bragi and a handful of
messengers, behind the ranks of Trolledyngjans and Marena Dimura, waited and observed.
Ragnarson directed his brief comments to an Itaskian sergeant named Altenkirk,
whose service went back to the wars, and who had spent years in the Lesser
Kingdoms advising the native armies.
"Now
we see if they learned anything from the wars and Lake Berberich," he
said.
"He'll
send the knights," Altenkirk promised. "We're only commoners and
infantry. We can't beat our betters. It's a chance to blood their swords
cheaply." His sarcasm was strong.
Ragnarson
chuckled. "We'll see. We'll see. Ah. You're right. Here they come,
straight up the road."
With
pennons and banners flying, trumpets blaring, and drums beating in Lieneke. The
townsfolk turned out as if this were the tournament Breitbarth seemed to think.
All night knights and men-at-arms had been swelling the Baron's forces in hopes
of a share of glory.
As it
began, Ragnarson received a messenger from Vorgreberg. The situation there had
become grim because news of his entrapment below the Ebeler had reached the
local nobility. Several had marched on the capital, hoping to seize it before
Breitbarth. Eanred was playing one against another, but his job had been
complicated by a Siluro uprising in Vorgreberg itself. A mob had tried to take
Castle Krief by surprise, and had failed. Hundreds had been
slaughtered. House to house fighting continued. Would Ragnarson be so kind as
to come help?
"Tell
him I'll get there when I can." He returned to the matter at hand.
Breitbarth's
knights started up the road four abreast, apparently unaware that it narrowed
on the hillside. At the first turn they became clogged, and the sky darkened
with arrows.
Breitbarth
broadened his attack, sending more knights to root out Ragnarson's archers. As
they blundered about on the soft earth of the vineyards, becoming entangled in
the vines, arrows sleeted down upon them.
Turning
to Altenkirk, Ragnarson said, "Send a Trolledyngjan company down each side
to finish the unhorsed."
It went on.
And on. And on. Attacking in three divisions, Breitbarth's best seldom got
close enough to strike a blow.
On the
left they began to waver. Ragnarson saw Blackfang appearing and disappearing
among the vines as he prepared a counterattack.
"I
think," said Altenkirk, after having returned and surveyed the situation,
"that you've done it again. They'll break."
"Maybe.
I'll help them along. Take charge of the Marena Dimura. Hold them back till
it's sure." He led the mounted Trolledyngjans down the far left side of
the vineyard, outflanking Blackfang, then wheeled and charged a mass of already
panicky knights.
Breitbarth's
right collapsed. Pressured by Bragi's horsemen, under a terrible arrowstorm,
they fled into their center, which broke in its turn and fell back on
Breitbarth's left. In a confusion of tripping horses and raining arrows, the
slaughter grew grim.
Resistance
collapsed. Hundreds threw down their arms. Hundreds more fled in unknightly
panic, with Reskird's arrows pursuing.
Ragnarson
hastily solidified his line and wheeled to face Lieneke, where the indecisive
Baron retained a strong reserve. Such of the enemy as remained on the hill he
left to the Marena Dimura.
In brisk
order the Trolledyngjans formed a shield wall. The Itaskians, sure they could
bring the world to its knees, fell in behind and began arcing long shots at
Breitbarth.
"I
could still lose," Ragnarson told himself, staring at the massed
Kaveliners. The Baron's reserves were mostly spearmen, but there were enough
knights to make him uncomfortable.
He need
not have feared. Those knights broke at the first flight. Only Breitbarth's
infantry stood fast, and they seemed as dazed as the Baron, who did little to
defend himself. The arrowstorm, applied from beyond the range of Breitbarth's
arbalesters, broke up the infantry formations.
Ragnarson
suffered his heaviest casualties in the final mixup. His Trolledyngjans broke
formation to wolf in and catch someone who would bring a good ransom.
His men
had perfomed near optimum, yet the battle left him unsatisfied.
"Haaken," he said after they had occupied Breitbarth's pavilion,
"we didn't, win a thing."
"What?
It's a great victory. They'll be bragging for years."
"Yes.
A great slaughter. A dramatic show. But not decisive. That's the key, Haaken.
Decisive. All we've gained is loot and prisoners. There're more Volstokiners
—the
Marena Dimura say they're levying heavily up there
—and more
Nordmen. They can lose indefinitely, as long as they win the last battle."
Reskird
came in. "What's up?"
"Depressed.
Like always, after," Blackfang replied. "What's the score?"
Kildragon
dropped onto a couch. "Breitbarth had taste," he said, looking
around. "We've counted two thousand bodies and a thousand prisoners
already. What I came about was, one of Breitbarth's people said they've got a
fat brown man in the dungeon at Damhorst. Could be Mocker. Also, Volstokin
himself has marched with five thousand men."
"Going
to be a hard winter up there, then," said Blackfang, "pulling so many
men off the farms."
"Expect
they figure they'll live off the spoils," Kildragon replied. "Bragi,
what next?"
Ragnarson
shook his preoccupations. "You been thinking about replacing the Itaskian
officers with loyal people? Haaken, what about your officers? Will they
stick?"
"As
long as we're winning."
Kildragon,
after consideration, replied, "The same. I don't think they've had
specific instructions. Yet."
"Good.
I've been thinking some things that won't win us any points with Haroun or the
Queen."
"Such
as?"
"First,
putting everyone on a horse, prisoners too, and roaring off to spring Mocker.
After that, I don't know. We'll keep out of Volstokin's way, unless we can nab
Vodicka himself. He'll take casualties because his people are green..."
"That's
what they thought about us," Reskird reminded.
"Uhm.
Maybe. We'll see. Maybe we'll go to work on him if he splits his forces.
Meanwhile, we stay out of the way till the pieces fall."
"Tarlson
won't like that."
"Too
bad. He worries too much. Vorgreberg hasn't been taken since Imperial
times."
iii) Speaking for the Queen
Getting
Mocker out proved easier said than done. Bragi marched swiftly westward, but
the Baroness had sealed her gates the moment news of her husband's defeat had
arrived. Ragnarson had no stomach for a siege, what with Volstokin just a few
days north of the Ebeler. He tried negotiation.
The
Baroness knew about Volstokin too. She tried to hold him till Vodicka arrived.
"Looks
like Lard Bottom's going to languish a while," Ragnarson told Kildragon.
"I'll pull out tonight. All the loot over the border?"
"Last
train left this morning. You know, if we quit now we'd be rich."
"We've
got a contract."
"You
want to try something tonight?"
"No.
She'll expect it. Might've worked when we first showed."
"What
about Vodicka?"
"He's
headed for Armstead?"
"So
I'm told. I'm never sure I can trust the Marena Dimura."
"Take
two hundred bowmen. Make him pay to cross. But pull out once they get a
bridgehead. I'll head south, wipe out a few barons. Catch up when you
can."
"Right.
You want I should play cat and mouse?"
"No.
You might get caught. I can't afford to lose two hundred bows."
Bragi
slipped away in the night, leaving Kildragon to keep the campfires burning. He
returned to Lieneke, then turned south and plundered the provinces of Froesel
and Delhagen, destroying nearly forty Nordmen castles and fortresses, till he
came to Sedlmayr, one of Kavelin's major cities and, like Damhorst, a focal
point of Nordmen rebellion. This was mountainous country where goat herding,
sheep herding, dairying, cheese making, and wool production were important. The
snow-topped mountains reminded him of Trolledyngja.
He
besieged Sedlmayr a week, but had no heart for it, so was about to move on
again when a deputation of Wesson merchants, deep in the night, spirited
themselves into his camp. Their spokesman, one Cham Mundwiller, was a forthright,
lean, elderly gentleman whose style reminded Bragi of the Minister.
"We've
come to offer you Sedlmayr," Mundwiller said. "On conditions."
"Of
course. What?"
"That
you minimize the fighting and looting."
"Reasonable,
but hard to guarantee. Wine? It's Baron Breitbarth's best." The Baron had
taken hard the fact that the Baroness refused to go his ransom. "Master
Mundwiller, I'm interested. But I don't understand your motives."
"Having
you camped here is bad for business. And production. It's almost shearing time,
and we can't get the cheese in to the presses, or out to the caves for aging.
Second,
we've no love for Baron Kartye or his brother vultures in Delhagen. Their taxes
devour our profits. We're Wessons, sir. That makes us the beasts of burden
whose backs support the Nordmen. We hear you're correcting that with a
sword."
"Ah.
I thought so. And your plans for Sedlmayr's future?"
They were
evasive. Slippery as merchants, Ragnarson thought, smiling wryly.
"Might
they involve Colonel Phiambolis? Or Tuchol Kiriakos? You'd have a hard time
convincing me they're tourists accidentally caught by my siege. Too big a
coincidence, them being siege specialists. And Baron Kartye, being Nordmen,
would be too proud to hire mercenaries." The presence of Kiriakos and
Phiambolis, two of the masterminds behind Hellin Daimiel's years-long stand
against El Murid, had been one of his reasons for wishing to move on.
"How
did you know?..." one merchant gasped.
"My
ears are covered with hair, but they're sharp." The presence of the
mercenaries had been reported by a Sir Andvbur Kimberlin of Karadja, a Nordmen
loyalist he had recently freed.
Enough
former prisoners, and recruits picked up here and there, had stuck for Ragnarson
to replace all losses as well as to form a native battalion under Sergeant
Altenkirk, who spoke Marena Dimura well. He was now considering splitting that
battalion and giving Sir Andvbur command of the Wessons.
"You
might even be thinking of declaring Sedlmayr a free city—after I've killed your
Nordmen for you."
Expressions
said he had struck close. He chuckled.
Mundwiller
put a bold face on it. "You're right." To the others, who protested,
"He might as well know. He'd act on his suspicions." To Ragnarson,
"One gold solidi for each soldier, five for sergeants, twenty for
officers, and a hundred for yourself."
"Interesting,"
said Ragnarson. "A fortune for a night's work. But not that much compared
to the loot we've already taken. And there's my contract with the Queen. The
more I learn about the woman, the more I want to keep it. Were she not saddled with a
nation of opportunists, she might be one of the better rulers Kavelin's
had." Quote from Sir Andvbur, an idealistic youth who placed the good of
the kingdom first, who believed nobles should be curators and conservators, not
divinely appointed exploiters.
But even
the Queen's enemies had little evil to say of her. There was nothing personal
in the Nordmen rebellion. It was generated by power-lust alone.
Ragnarson's
admiration for the woman, in large part, stemmed from the fact that she did not
interfere. In other times and places he had suffered snowstorms of directives
from employers.
Tarlson
was another matter. He sent out blizzards of messages.
"What
can we offer?" Mundwiller finally asked.
"Your
allegiance to Her Majesty."
They did
a lot of foot-shuffling and floor-staring.
"Suppose
a direct charter could be arranged, with Sedlmayr and Delhagen as Royal fiefs
in keeping of a Council of Aldermen? Direct responsibility to the Crown."
That
wasn't what the majority wanted, but Mundwiller saw they would get nothing
better. "Can you speak for the Queen?"
"No.
Only to her. But if Sedlmayr swears allegiance, supports the throne, and
faithfully resists the rebels, I'll press your cause powerfully. She should be
amenable, coming from the Auszura Littoral. She'll be familiar with the
Bedelian League and what those cities have done to hasten recovery from the
wars."
"We'll
have to consider what might happen if we announce fealty. An army of two,
Phiambolis and Kiriakos, isn't much defense against outraged Nordmen."
"I
don't think they'll bother you till they rid themselves of the Queen."
"It's
your chances we'll be studying."
"You'll
get no better offer. Or opportunity," said Ragnarson.
Once the
deputation left, Bragi told Blackfang, "Start packing in the morning. Make
it look like we're planning to slip away in the night. I don't want to wait while they
play games."
Next
night Cham Mundwiller was back, upset, wanting to know why Ragnarson was
leaving.
"What's
your decision?" Bragi asked.
"For.
Reluctantly on some parts. Our more timid souls don't think your luck will
hold. Personally, I'm satisfied. It's what I've been arguing for all
along."
"Tonight?"
"Everything's
ready."
"Then
so are we."
"One
little matter. Some articles for you to sign. That was the hard part, getting
them to accept a position from which they couldn't back down."
Ragnarson
chuckled as he examined the parchment. "An exchange, then. My own
guarantees." He handed the man a document he had had prepared. "And
my word, which's worth more. Unless your fealty becomes suspect."
"As
an act of good faith, some information which, I believe, only I outside the
Nordmen councils possess."
Ragnarson's
eyebrows rose questioningly.
"The
Captal of Savernake has been making the rounds of the barons. He slipped out of
Sedlmayr just before you arrived."
"So?"
"He
claims the true child of the old King is in his custody. You've heard the
stories about a changeling? He's trying to find backers for his 'real'
heir."
"The
Captal," Bragi interjected. "He's old?" He described the
sorcerer he and Mocker had encountered in Ruderin.
"You've
met?"
"In
passing. You've told me more than you realize, friend. I'll return the favor,
but don't spread it around. The power behind the Captal is Shinsan."
Mundwiller
went pale. "What interest could they have in Ravelin?"
"A
passage to the west. A quietly attained bridgehead against the day when they
move to attain world dominion. All spur-of-the-moment speculation, of course.
Who knows the motives of Shinsan?"
"True.
We move at the second hour. I'm to lead you to the postern we hold." iv) Savernake Gap
Bragi
occupied Sedlmayr without disturbing its citizens' sleep, capturing the Nordmen
and disarming their troops. Baron Kartye had assumed he would decamp in the
night.
Sedlmayr
taken, Ragnarson secured Delhagen, then decamped in earnest.
Ragnarson
departed with twenty-five hundred men, over half of them Kaveliners. None were
men he had given Reskird to dispute the Armstead ford. If forced to fight, he
would miss those bows.
Kildragon,
he learned, had held the ford so successfully that he had almost turned Vodicka
back—till the Baroness Breitbarth had surprised him from behind. He had barely
gotten out. Fleeing east, he had encountered Volstokiners who had crossed the
river above him. He had abandoned everything but his weapons, swum the Ebeler,
and was now hiding in the Bodenstead forest.
Vodicka
had shown his gratitude to the Baroness by making her prisoner and sacking
Damhorst. That gentleman had abandoned all pretense, was destroying everyone
and everything as he advanced toward Vorgre-berg.
The
barons harrying the capital now eyed him as the greater danger.
In
Volstokin itself there was trouble, bands of horsemen cutting, in the guerrilla
style, at the roots of royal power. Ragnarson suspected Haroun.
Good.
Nothing prevented him from doing what he wanted. He marched eastward, passed
within twenty miles of Vorgreberg, struck the caravan route east of the city
and, spreading panic among the Nordmen, swept on till he entered Savernake, at
the juncture of the Kapenrungs and Mountains of M'Hand, where the Savernake Gap
debouched into Kavelin. He considered
the Captal the most dire threat to the Queen.
His
arrow-straight drive didn't slow till he had entered the Gap itself and had
climbed above the timberline. Then he stopped cold. He summoned Blackfang,
Altenkirk, Jarl Ahring, subbing for Kildragon, and Sir Andvbur Kimberlin of
Karadja, in command of the new Wesson battalion.
The five
considered the Gap above. Behind them, men seized the opportunity to rest.
"I
don't like it," Ragnarson said. "Too quiet." The pass did seem
as still as a desert.
"Almost
as if time had stopped," said Blackfang. "You'd expect an eagle or
something."
Altenkirk
spoke to one of the Marena Dimura. The man examined the road ahead.
Ragnarson,
blue eyes frosty, studied the sky. He had scouts out. They were to send up
smoke in case of trouble.
"I've
been this way before," said Sir Andvbur," and have heard tell it gets
like this when the Captal's expecting a fight."
The
Marena Dimura said something to Altenkirk, who translated, "The scouts are
still ahead of us."
"Uhm.
The Captal knows we're coming. In Trolle-dyngja they defend passes by rolling
rocks down on people. Altenkirk, put a company on each face. Have them root out
anything bigger than a mouse. It'll be slow, but caution's more important than
speed now."
"It's
only four or five miles to Maisak," said Sir Andvbur. "Around that
bluff that looks like a man's face. It's built against the mountain where the
pass narrows. The Imperial engineers used natural caverns for barracks, laying
the least possible masonry."
Bragi had
gone through the Gap to Necremnos once, a few years after the wars, but his
memories were vague. He had been in a hurry to see a woman.
Marena
Dimura filtered up the rugged slopes. The troops below perked up, saw to their
weapons. The day-after-day, week-after-week grind of the march, without a pause
to loot or fight or carouse, had eroded morale. Prospective action lifted that.
"What's
that?" asked Ragnarson, indicating a wisp of blackness over the formation Sir
Andvbur had pointed out. "Not smoke?"
"The
Captal's sorcery, I'd guess," said the knight.
"Send
your people for more firewood. We'll make our own light. Have some men stand by
with what we've got. Ahring, bring your best bowmen up to support the Marena
Dimura."
Once they
had left, Ragnarson told Blackfang, "Maybe it's mother's witch-blood, Haaken.
I've got a bad feeling."
"You're
sure this's the sorcerer from Ruderin?"
"Reasonably."
"Think
I'll have a bad feeling myself." He chuckled. "Here we sit without
even Mocker's phony magic, getting ready to storm a vassal of Shinsan."
"That's
my worry, Haaken. The Captal's just supposed to be a dabbler. But what's
Shinsan put in?"
"Imagine
we'll find out."
"Haaken,
I don't know what I'd do without you." He laughed weakly. "Don't know
what to do with you, either, but that's another problem."
"Don't
start your death dance yet."
"Eh?"
"We've
been through the campaigns. You're going to tell me how to run things after
you've found the spear with your name."
"Damn.
Next time I'm using new people." He laughed.
Marena
Dimura shouted on the slopes. Something broke cover, ran a few yards toward
them, then fled the other way. A bowstring twanged. The creature jumped,
screamed, fell. Ragnarson and Blackfang moved up, a dozen bowmen at their
backs.
"What
is it?" Blackfang asked. The body was the size of that of a six-year-old.
It had the head of a squirrel.
"Coronel!"
Bragi
glanced up. A Marena Dimura tossed something. He caught it. A child-sized
crossbow.
Haaken
caught a quiver of bolts, pulled one out, examined its head.
"Poisoned."
Ragnarson
had the word passed, saw shields start to be carried less sloppily.
"Poor
fellow," said Blackfang, turning the corpse with a foot.
"Didn't want to fight. Could've gotten off a shot."
"Maybe
the light was too bright." Ragnarson studied the black cloud growing over
the bluff with the face of a man.
During
the next hour, as the sky darkened, the Marena Dimura flushed two score
creatures of almost as many shapes. Several of Ragnarson's people learned the
hard way about the poisoned bolts. The little people weren't aggressive, but
they got ferocious when cornered.
"Wait'11
you see the owl-faced ones," Ragnarson said as they reached the natural
obelisk he had marked as their goal for the hour. "Some as big as you, and
even uglier."
"Speaking
of ugly," Haaken replied with sudden grimness.
They had
found the missing scouts.
The men
hung on a gallows-like rack, from curved spikes piercing the bases of their
skulls. The flesh was gone from their faces, fingers, and toes. Their bellies
had been ripped open. Their bowels hung to the ground. Their hearts had been
cut out. Painted in blood on a pale boulder were the Itaskian words,
"Leave Kavelin."
"That's
Shinsan work, sure," Blackfang growled.
"Must
be," Sir Andvbur agreed. "The Captal's dramatics were never this
grisly."
"Get
that writing cleaned up," said Ragnarson. "Then let the men see this.
Ought to get them vengeance-mad."
The sight
did stir a new, grim determination, especially among the Marena Dimura.
Hitherto they had done no more than flush the Captal's timorous creatures. Now
they hunted for blood.
Intensity
of resistance rose sharply. Bragi moved more archers up to support the Marena
Dimura, and Trolledyngjans to shield the bowmen from any sudden charge. He had
fires and torches lighted and slowed the advance to an even more cautious pace.
A little
later, while they waited for the Trolledyngjans to clear the road of a band of
armored owl-faces behind a boulder barricade, he asked Sir Andvbur, "How
long before the snows come? Soon?"
"Within
the month, this high up."
"Bad.
We've got to take Maisak or they'll have all winter to strengthen it."
"True.
We couldn't maintain a siege once winter came."
"Not
with what we've got. Haaken, get those boulders cleared. We don't want
bottlenecks behind us."
Against
continually increasing resistance, Ragnarson's men had the best of the casualty
ratio.
It became
completely dark. The men grew concerned about sorcery. There was little Bragi
could do to reassure them.
As they
neared the bluff, resistance ceased. Ragnarson ordered a halt.
"I'd
trade my share of the plunder for a staff wizard," he muttered. "What
do we do now? Even during the wars nobody rooted the Captal out. And then he
was using more normal defenses. Why should he fear an attack from this
direction?"
"It's
the caverns," said Sir Andvbur. "Maisak's built over their
easternmost mouths. There're lots of openings here on the west slope. During
the wars, once he'd pushed some scouts past, El Murid almost took Maisak by
sending men back underground. Most vanished in the maze, but some did reach the
fortress."
"He
didn't seal them?"
"Those
he could find. But what's been sealed can be unsealed."
"Uhm.
Altenkirk, pass the word to look for caves. But not to go in."
The next
phase of the Captal's defense exploded on leathery wings. Flying things, from
man-sized like the one Ragnarson had seen in Ruderin to creatures little bigger
than the bats they resembled, suddenly swarmed overhead. Bragi's staff were
the focal point, but escaped injury. The winged things' only weapon was a
poisoned dart impelled by gravity.
"This
can't be his last defense," Ragnarson declared.
"There's
an open, flat place the other side of Stone Face," said Sir Andvbur.
"Suitable for battle."
"Uhm.
Could we see it from up top?" Ragnarson indicated the highest point of the
formation. No one answered. "That's what we'll do. Haaken, take over.
Don't go past the bluff. Altenkirk, give me three of your best men. One should
speak a language I do. Sir Andvbur, come with me."
v) Woman of the mists
The peak
provided a god's eye view of the pass and Maisak. From it Ragnarson saw things
he hadn't cared to view. In the open area Sir Andvbur had described, drawn up
in line of battle, statue-still among hundreds of illuminating fires, were the
most fearsome warriors he had ever seen, each clad in black, chitinous armor.
"Shinsan,"
he whispered. "Four, five hundred. We'll never cut our way through."
"We've
beaten armies three times our number."
"Armed
rabbles," said Ragnarson. "The Dread Empire trains its soldiers from
childhood. They don't question, they don't disobey, they don't panic. They
stand, they fight, they die, and they retreat only when they've got orders. And
they're the best soldiers, fighting, you'll find. Or so I'm told by people
who're supposed to know. This's my first encounter."
"We
could bring bowmen up."
"Right.
Having come this far, I can't pull out without trying." He turned to send
a Marena Dimura to Blackfang and Ahring. "Sir Andvbur. What do you make of
that?" He indicated the far distance, where countless fires burned.
"Looks
like the eastern barons have gotten together."
"Uhm.
How far?"
"They're
still in high pastureland. Near Baxendala. Three days. Two if they hurry. I
don't think they will, considering the showing you've made. They'll piddle
around till it's too late to back out."
''Think
they'll come after us? Or wait there, hoping we get the worst of the
Captal?"
Sir
Andvbur shrugged. "You never know what a Nordmen will do. What's
unreasonable to a logical mind. Tell you what. If you want to go ahead here,
I'll take my Wessons down and set an ambush. We won't be much help against
Shinsan."
"This
requires a staff meeting," said Ragnarson. "Those Shinsaners will
wait. Let's slide back down."
To his
surprise, he found his officers unanimous. They should try taking Maisak. They
found the presence of Shinsan unsettling, but an argument for immediate attack.
The advance base must be denied the Dread Empire. The baronial forces they
would worry about later.
They were
getting a little blase about the barons, Bragi feared.
He
detailed Sir Andvbur, the Wessons, Altenkirk, and half the Marena Dimura to
prepare a reception for the barons twelve miles west, in the pines around the
tiny lake and marshy meadow where the Ebeler had its headwaters. As always, he
chose ground difficult for horsemen.
He
prepared meticulously for his engagement with Shinsan, bringing up tons of
firewood, having his men erect a series of rock barricades across the floor of
the pass, preparing boulders for rolling down on those positions as they were
lost, and locating dozens of snipers on the slopes to support the
Trolledyngjans, who would do the close fighting. He had several thousand arrows
taken to the bluff top. And he sent Marena Dimura to hunt ways to bring small
forces against Maisak itself, and to locate every possible cave mouth. He
invested a day and a half preparing.
From the
bluff it looked as though the enemy hadn't moved, though Bragi knew they
rotated for rest. "Well," he muttered, looking down at all that
armor, "no point putting it off." Blackfang was awaiting the first
onslaught. "Loose!"
Twenty
shafts began their drop. In the gloom and shifting light, downhill shooting was
tricky. Ragnarson didn't expect much, though his bowmen were his best.
But
figures toppled, a few with each flight. Their armor wasn't impervious.
"Gods,
are they mute?" one archer muttered. Never a cry echoed up. But Shinsan's
soldiers fought and died in utter silence. It disconcerted the most fearless
enemies.
The enemy
commander had to make a decision. From his Marena Dimura Ragnarson knew a force
couldn't be sent up the bluff from the Maisak side. Shinsan would have to
withdraw into the fortress, or advance, to break through and secure the bluff
from behind. Standing fast meant slow but certain slaughter. The peak was high
enough that arrows from bows below were spent on arrival.
Shinsan
did three things: sent a company against Ragnarson's walls of stone, withdrew
forces that couldn't be brought to bear, and rolled out a pair of heavy,
wheeled ballistae with which they fired back.
"Take
care!" Ragnarson snapped after a shaft the size of a knight's lance
growled a foot over his head. "Duck when you see them trigger. You won't
see the shaft coming. You, you, you. Put some fire arrows on them."
He had a
sudden premonition, pulled five men back and had them watch for an aerial
attack.
"Colonel,
they're moving a platoon to the canyon."
"Hurt
those you can. Mind the ballistae. You men, look sharp. Now's the time they'll
come."
And they
did, a swarm of leather-winged hellspawn who, though anticipated, exploded upon
them in a sudden shower of poisoned darts. The bigger ones tried to force his
archers off the bluff. One man plunged to his death. Then they were gone.
Ragnarson
searched the rim for grapnels with depending lines, found two, smiled grimly.
He would have tried that himself. Those gone, he threw the enemy casualties
after them. He expected Shinsan would send the winged things each time
reinforcements went in below, and wasn't disappointed. His men soon slaughtered
most of them. He lost two more people. The arrow fire scarcely slackened. He
plied a dead man's bow himself.
A
messenger came from Blackfang. The first barricade had fallen. The spirits of
the men remained good, though they were awed by the prowess and determination
of their enemies. They knew they were in a real fight this time.
Ragnarson
had had seven barricades erected, manning the first four with a hundred men
apiece. The rest of his forces were building an eighth and ninth. To beat him
Shinsan would have to seize old walls faster than he could build new ones.
The first
four hours of fighting were uneventful, Haaken's Trolledyngjans hacked it out
toe to toe with Shinsan while the Itaskians showered the enemy with arrows.
Casualties were heavy on both sides, but the ratio favored Ragnarson because of
his superior bows. Even fighting from barricades the Trolledyngjans got the
worst of the close combat.
When
Haaken sent word that the fifth wall was weakening, he began withdrawing from
the bluff. Otherwise he would be cut off. It would have been nice to have
denied it to the enemy, but he thought the battle would be decided before
Shinsan could take advantage of it. He left two Marena Dimura to keep an eye on
Maisak.
Before he
departed, he examined the western slopes. It should be true night down there.
He saw no campfires, but did spot the beacon Sir Andvbur was supposed to light
when the barons neared his position. Assuming he beat Shinsan, which wasn't
likely, could he handle the barons? His men would be weary and weak.
"Colonel."
He
turned.
A new
dimension had been given Shinsan's attack. He wondered if it were because of
his withdrawal.
From
Maisak's gate came the woman he and Mocker had seen in mists in Ruderin. She
rode a dark-as-midnight stallion trapped in Shinsan armor. Both moved in
intensely bright light. Even at that distance Bragi was awed by the woman's
beauty. Such perfection was unnatural.
Beside
her, on a white charger, rode a child equally bright, perhaps six, in golden
breastplate and greaves, with a small sword in hand and a child-sized crown on
his head. This was a simple thing, iron, like a helmet with the top removed.
"Must
be the Captal's Pretender," Bragi muttered. A stream of
Kaveliners followed the woman and child. The Captal had, apparently, found
support for his royal candidate.
The
battle was lost, he thought. Shinsan had softened him up for these men to break
and give the child-king an imaginary victory. Time to worry about keeping it
from becoming a rout.
Which,
unhorsed, would dishearten those troops most? He drew a shaft to his ear,
released, put a second in the air while the first yet sped.
He let
fly at the two stallions, assuming the sorceress would have shielded herself
and her puppet with spells.
The first
shaft found the heart of the white, the second the flank of the black. The
white screamed and threw the child. The black, like the soldiers of Shinsan,
made no sound, but it staggered and slowly went down, hindquarters first. Two
more shafts whistled in, one missing, the last turning to smoke in the
invisible protection around the woman.
She
shrieked, a sound of rage so loud it should never have come from mortal lips.
She swung a glittering spear round to point at the peak. Mists of darkness
enveloped her.
Ragnarson
ran. The bluff behind him exploded. He put on more speed as he heard stone
grinding and groaning. The bluff was falling apart, sliding away into the pass.
Two hundred yards downslope he glanced back. The peak looked as though some
antediluvian monster had taken a bite—and was still nibbling.
"What
the hell happened?" Blackfang demanded when he reached the canyon floor.
"Witch
got mad at me."
"Cut
off her nose to spite her face, then."
"Eh?"
"Must've
been three hundred Shinsaners where the mountain fell."
Ragnarson's
men were finishing the survivors. Some were about to go haring over the
rockfall toward Maisak. "She'll really be mad now. Call them back. We're
pulling out."
"Why?
We've won."
"Uhn-uh.
There's still one hell of a mob over there. Kaveliners. But she's the
problem..."
"As
you say."
"Now
the barons," Ragnarson mumbled, as he settled on a rock, exhausted.
After a
while he had men collect enough Shinsan armor and weapons to convince any
doubters in Kavelin.
NINE: Family Life
i) I’ll wind from Itaskia
Elana
didn't worry till Bragi had been gone a week. By the end of the second week she
was frantic.
The third
raid had left her all raw nerves, and Bevold, who had fallen days behind
schedule, had become insufferable.
She spent
much of her time watching her teardrop, till Gerda chided her for neglecting
Ragnar and Gundar. She realized she was being foolish. Why did the women always
have to wait?
One
bright spot was Rolf. His chances looked better daily.
Came an
afternoon when Ragnar, playing in the watchtower, shouted, "Ma, there's
some men coming."
They were
near enough to count. Six men. She recognized Uthe's and Dahl's mounts.
Despair
seized her. "That bastard. That lying, craven son-of-a-bitch with a brain
like sheep shit in shallow water trying to make it to dry land. He's let Haroun
talk him into it. I'll kill him. I'll break every bone in his body and kill
him!"
"Ma!"
Ragnar
had never seen her like this.
"All
right." She scooped him up and settled him on her hip. He laughed.
"Let's go watch Uthe weasel."
She moved
a chair to the porch and, with Ragnar and Gundar squirming in her lap, waited.
One
glimpse of Uthe's face was enough. Bragi had gone chasing Haroun's dreams. She
was so angry she just glared and waited.
Uthe
approached reluctantly, shrugged and showed his palms in a gesture of defeat.
"Goodwife
Ragnarson?" one of Haas's companions asked. She nodded.
"Captain
Wilhusen, Staff, War Ministry. His Excellency offers his apologies and
heartfelt condolences for any inconvenience caused by his calling your husband
to active service."
Active
service? They couldn't do that. Could they?
"Elana?"
She
turned slightly, allowed another face to focus. "Turran! And Valther.
What?..."
"We
work for the army now. Kind of slid into it sideways."
"And
Brock?" Her anger she ignored for the moment.
"Poisoned
arrow in Escalon."
"Oh.
I'm sorry."
"Don't
be. We've been dead for years. Just won't lie down."
"You'll
see Nepanthe, won't you? She's been so worried."
"There'll
be time to catch up. We'll be seeing a lot of each other."
"I
don't understand. But come in. You must be tired and hungry."
"You've
done well," said Turran, following her in.
"Bragi's
worked hard. Too hard, sometimes. And we've had good people helping. It hasn't
been easy."
"No
doubt. I know what this country was like."
"Well,
make yourselves comfortable. Captain. Valther. You. I didn't catch your name.
I'm sorry."
"Sergeant
Hunsicker, ma'am, with the Captain, and don't go to no bother on my
account."
"No
bother. Gerda, we've guests. Hungry guests." A moment later, "Some
explanations, please," she demanded, unable to control her anger.
"Where's my husband?"
"Captain,
may I?" Turran asked. He received a nod. While he talked, Elana considered
the changes four years had wrought. He was handsome as ever, but gray had crept
into his raven hair, and he had lost a lot of weight. He was pale, looked weak,
and at times shook as if suddenly chilly. When she asked about his health, he
replied cryptically that, once again, this time in Escalon, they had chosen the
losing side.
A shadow
ghosted across Valther's face. He looked older than Turran, who had a decade on
him. He had been a lively daredevil four years ago; now he seemed almost
retarded. When, with a sort of childlike curiosity, he wandered over to stare
into the fireplace, Elana whispered, "What happened to Valther?"
"It
comes and goes," Turran replied. "He never talks any more. Escalon
was hard for him. But the bad periods get shorter. Sometimes he seems almost
ready to speak, then his mind wanders... I haven't given up hope." He went
on explaining why Bragi hadn't come home.
She
didn't understand why she had to turn her home over to Captain Wilhusen, but it
was clear she had little choice.
"Where
can we go?" she asked. "We can't stay in the kingdom. We can't go
north to Bragi's people. We've all got enemies in Iwa Skolovda, Dvar and Prost
Kamenets. And we can't go south if Greyfells' partisans want us."
"Enemies
all around us, yes," said Turran. "The Minister has offered to let
you use his estate on the Auszura Littoral."
"We
can't get there from here."
"We
can, but it'll be hard."
"How?"
"One
way is through Driscol Fens, over the Silverbind, through Shara, south to the
Lesser Kingdoms, then down the River Scarlotti to the coast."
"Which
means sneaking past Prost Kamenets, then hoping we can get out of Shara without
being murdered or enslaved. I trust the alternative's more palatable."
"You
go west through the forests to the Minister's manor at Sieveking, then catch a
naval transport going south. It looks easier, but there're problems. First,
this vessel's too small to let you take any personal effects. Second, it's
lightly armed and has a small crew. It wouldn't stand off a determined pirate.
There are still some around in the Red Islands."
"A
dilemma with more horns than a nine-headed stag.-I'll talk it over with my
people. And Nepanthe. Her lot will have to go too, I suppose." "Of
course."
ii) Walk to the coast
With one
exception, the people chose to abandon everything to Captain Wilhusen. The
exception was Bevold Lif. The Freylander refused to budge. They had survived
bandits, wolves, weather, and war, he declared, and he would survive Greyfells'
political successors. He was staying. Somebody had to keep the soldiers from
stealing the silverware.
They left
the grant with little but food and clothing. Preshka was the only adult not walking.
He rode a donkey. The forest paths were impassable for wagons and horses.
The way
led within forty miles of Itaskia, and for two days they had to travel open
farmlands above the capital, hurrying to cross a strait of civilization which
ran north to Duchy Greyfells and West Wapentake, a strait that separated two
great islands of forest in the midlands. Unfriendly eyes found them there. As
they reached the western forest, they spied the dust of many riders.
"You
think they'll wait for us on the other side?" Elana asked.
Turran
shrugged. "They don't know where we'll come out."
"How
much figuring would it take? They know where the Minister's place is..."
"But
we've got the jewel. We can slip past them in the dark."
"You
hope. You said you'd tell me about it."
"Later."
"It's
later. Talk."
"All
right. After I make sure they don't come in after us. Go on a few miles. We'll
catch up."
She took
the trail-breaker's position, following a path tramped by generations of deer.
Valther followed her, hand on sword hilt but eyes faraway, as if he were
remembering another retreat. Turran had promised to tell that tale too.
After
posting sentries she sat with Rolf, who was pale with discomfort. Valther
remained near her, as he always did when Turran was absent.
"How're
you feeling?" she asked, laying one hand on Rolf's.
"Miserable."
He coughed softly. "Lung's never going to be right."
"Think
we'll make it?"
"Don't
worry. It's out of our hands. We will or we won't. Depends on how much manpower
they want to waste. They're not stupid. Catching us won't change the big
picture."
"Tell
me about Kavelin. I've never been there."
"I've
told what's to tell. Except that it'd be a nice country if someone skimmed off
about fifty thousand Nordmen and ambitious commoners. I liked it. Might settle
there if Bragi straightens them out."
"You
think he can? I mean, sixteen hundred men against a whole country, and maybe El
Murid?"
"Sixteen
hundred plus Bragi, Mocker, and Haroun."
"Who're
only men. Rolf, I'm scared. It's been so long since I was on my own."
"I'm
here. I'll always be here... I'm sorry."
"No,
don't be. I understand. Ah, here's Turran."
The man
came over, squatted by his brother, said, "Well, no worse. I was afraid
being chased would hurt... Oh, they've posted watchers, but the rest went south
again. Guess they'll wait on the other side. How're you making it, Rolf?
Pushing too hard?"
"I'll
survive. Iwa Skolovdans are fiesty."
Turran
smiled wanly. "Won't lay down and die, that's sure." Once, briefly,
he had been master of that city. "Might as well make camp. We could do a
few more miles, but we'll be better off for the rest. Especially the
children."
Elana
snorted. "Not Ragnar. Nor Ethrian. They've put in more miles than any of
us. But maybe you'll find time to tell the story you've been promising."
Turran's
dark eye went to Valther. "All right. After supper."
"I'll
tell Nepanthe."
iii) War in the east
"I
suppose the story begins," Turran told an audience of Elana, Nepanthe,
Preshka, and Uthe and Dahl Haas, "when Valther talked Brock and me into
going to Hellin Daimiel. Jerrad wouldn't go. He went back to the mountains. I
guess he's probably hunting and trying to rebuild Ravenkrak. Fool. Anyway, in
Hellin Daimiel we were approached by a representative of the Monitor of
Escalon. He was recruiting westerners to help in a war.
"We
became part of a devil's catch of hedge wizards, assassins, mercenaries, and
marginal types that might be useful in a wizard's war.
"It
was a long journey east. By the time we reached Tatarian, Escalon's capital,
there were a thousand of us.
"We
found out that the country was at war with Shinsan. Escalon was strong, but no
match for the Dread Empire.
"Escalon
was losing. The whole kingdom lay under a siege of night. Demonic, poisonous
hordes of hell-things fought for both sidles.
"We
foreigners were thrown in right away. And we stalled Shinsan for a while. But
then they started advancing again.
"The
Monitor decided to chance everything on one vast thaumaturgic battle. It defies
description. It lasted nine days. When it was over an area as big as Itaskia
had been
wasted. Millions died. In Escalon only Tatarianand the major cities survived.
In Shinsan, we don't know. We hadn't lost, but we hadn't won, and that, in the
long run, meant our defeat.
"It
was during that battle that we lost Brock. We got too involved to look out for
ourselves. An arrow got through and wounded him.
"That
it had been loosed a thousand miles away in Shinsan was no excuse. We'd been
provided with ways of sensing the attack. We just didn't pay attention.
"The
wound was minor, but the shaft bore soul-devouring spells. In the end he begged
us to give him a clean death."
Turran
paused for a moment, locked in his memories.
"Afterwards,
the Monitor decided Escalon was lost. He summoned Valther and me. He told us
that Shinsan would turn on Matayanga next. He believed the world's hope,
ultimately, lay in the west because Yo Hsi and Nu Li Hsi had been destroyed
here. What he was trying to do, he told me, was to buy time. He hoped somebody
like Varthlokkur or the Star Rider would see what was happening and do
something about the west's political choas.
"That's
when he gave me the jewel, Elana. The one I sent you. You've been using it for
a warden, its least important power.
"The
Monitor believed it was one of the Poles of Power. How he came by it I don't
know, and I don't think it really is a Pole, but one thing's sure. It's
important. I saw him use it. He could move mountains... He wanted me to get it
to the Star Rider. But I don't think so. I don't know why. When this's over,
I'm going to try to take it to Varthlokkur. He knows the Dread Empire. I think
he'd have the best shot at stopping them."
Silence
closed in, drawing a tight circle round the campfire. For several minutes
Turran's audience digested what he had had to say. Then his sister, glancing at
a fitfully dozing Valther, asked, "Why didn't you come home? You lost
Brock, and the war was over..."
"It
wasn't over. Just lost. There was time to buy. We thought we could help. After
the great wizards' battle both sides had to rely on ordinary soldiers fora
while. It's generally conceded that I'm a pretty good general. Impetuous
and over-optimistic, they tell me, but less so when I'm working for somebody
else. I managed to take the battle to Shinsan for several months."
"I'm
confused. You've mentioned Nu Li Hsi's heirs, and Yo Hsi's. Who were you
fighting?"
"Both.
Sometimes one, sometimes the other. They were feuding. Shinsan's army wasn't.
It took the orders of whoever gave them. When we first got to Escalon, we
fought Yo Hsi's daughter. After the great battle, it was O Shing. I don't know
when they made the changeover. The transition couldn't be detected. A few
months later we were fighting Mist again.
"I
saw the woman.. .Unbelievable. So much evil in such a beautiful package."
"But
what about Valther?" Nepanthe demanded. "You never did have any
patience, did you? Well, it's a complicated story. Try not to interrupt."
Nepanthe and Turran had been bickering for years.
"By
some snare of the Power he still had, the Monitor caught one of the Tervola. He
managed to keep the man alive long enough to find out that Mist herself would
take charge of the final assault on Tatarian.
"The
Monitor planned one last cast of the dice. Its only objective was Mist's death.
"Valther
and I were heart and soul of the plan. And we blew it.
"Our
job was to get captured." Turran talked in little gusts, like an
indecisive breeze. During his pauses he poked the fire with a stick, threw
acorns at tree trunks, used the fingernails on one hand to clean those on the
other. He didn't want to relive these memories. "Because we'd been
involved in her father's death. The Monitor thought she'd want t'o question us.
If she did, we were supposed to change sides, then kill her when we got the
chance.
"It
worked too good.
"The
woman has a weakness. Vanity. Make it two. Insecurity, too. We played to them.
And she started keeping us around like pets. She had a million questions about
the west.
"Things started
going wrong when
Valt started believing what he
was saying..."
Sighs
escaped his listeners. They became more attentive. Turran stirred the fire
again.
"It
was my fault... I should've... In Shinsan they use herbs to increase their
grasp of the Power. It stops you from getting older, too. But once you use
them, you have to keep on..."
"You?..."
Nepanthe interjected.
"In
the service of the Dread Empire, one must. After he had betrayed Escalon, Valt
tried to make it up by killing Mist. It didn't work.
"I
don't know. Maybe her wickedness was polluted by mercy. Maybe an accidental
thread of love got woven into her tapestry of evil. Whatever, of all the
possible punishments, she chose the simplest. She took away our supply of
herbs."
"That's
why he's this way?" This time it was Elana who couldn't restrain herself.
"How come you recovered?"
"I'm
not an expert on the human mind. Yes, I recovered. That was six months ago, in
an asylum in Hellin Daimiel. For a while I didn't know if what I remembered was
true or just a nightmare. Nobody knew anything about us. The Watch had found us
in the street and committed us for our own protection. The scholars who studied
us told me Valther is using drug withdrawal as an excuse not to come back and face
his guilt."
"If
only Mocker were here," Nepanthe mused. Her eyes were sad as she gazed at
Valther. "He might be able to reach Valt."
"Time
is the cure," Turran told her. "It worked for me. So I keep
hoping."
iv) Auszura Littoral
With
Elana's jewel guiding them, they slipped through their enemies to Sieveking.
But the transport wasn't yet there. When Dingolfing did arrive it was in no
condition to sail to the Auszura Littoral. The ship had encountered heavy weather
shortly after leaving Portsmouth, then had met a Trolledyngjan reever off Cape
Blood. Her captain, Miles Norwine, said rigging repairs might take a week.
Heavy damage, where the Trolledyngjan had rammed, would have to wait for the
yards at Itaskia.
"It
seems," said Elana, standing on the quay with Turran and Nepanthe,
"that somewhere in the house of the gods, probably in the Jakes, there's a
little pervert who gets his pleasure making me miserable."
Turran
chuckled. "Know what? I'll bet the head man over there's been thinking the
same thing." He indicated tents crowning a hill overlooking the estate.
Later, a
messenger brought the news that Bragi had crossed the Porthune.
"The
renegades," said Turran, "might try their luck when they find out.
I'd better get something ready."
That
night he and the men laid an ambush at the edge of the estate. Elana, with Dahl
Haas under her wing, went to observe.
Sure
enough, near midnight, men came sneaking through the brush. Turran sprang his
trap. The surprise was complete. In minutes a dozen had been slaughtered and
the rest sent whooping up the hillside.
Dahl,
half-wild, used his dagger to finish a casualty who came staggering toward
Elana, then, realizing what he had done, heaved his supper and began crying.
Elana was trying to calm him when his father appeared. "What
happened?" Uthe asked. Elana explained.
Uthe put
his arm around his son. "You did well," he said. "It's always
hardest the first time. Lot of men do their conscience-racking first, get
themselves killed hesitating."
Dahl
nodded, but reassurances did little good. The experience was too intensely
personal.
Captain
Norwine got his rigging repaired and a patch on his hull. He was willing to
risk the trip. Elana put it to a vote. It went in favor.
Dingolfing
put out and beat round Cape Blood, sailed south past the Silverbind Estuary,
Portsmouth, and the Octylyan Protectorate without mishap. Norwine hugged the coast like a
babe his mother. He was prepared to go aground if trouble developed. They
weathered a minor storm off the Porthune, spending two nervous days at the
pumps and buckets, but came through with no damage other than to landlubbers'
stomachs.
"Sail
ho!" a lookout cried just north of Sacuescu. Norwine put his helm over and
ran for shallow water. Turran and the shipboard Marines prepared for a fight.
But the vessel proved to be the Rifkin, out of Portsmouth. The fat caravel
dipped her merchant's colors to Dingolfing's naval ensign.
Norwine
kept everyone at stations once they passed Sacuescu. They were near the Red
Isles where, despite regular patrols by the Itaskian Navy, pirates lurked. But
their luck held. They made the fishing port of Tineo, midway between Sacuescu
and Dunno Scuttari, without incident.
From
Tineo it was a twelve-mile walk to the Minister's villa, which occupied a
headland with a spectacular view of the sea. The staff expected them. They
seemed accustomed to hiding friends of the Minister.
The
Auszura Littoral was all Turran had promised, and utterly peaceful. So peaceful
that, after a few months, it began to grate. There was nothing to do but wait
for rumors from Kavelin, which were unreliable by the time they filtered
through to Tineo.
Rolf
began wandering, sometimes accompanied by Uthe, to Sacuescu and Dunno Scuttari.
Elana didn't weather his absences well. He was her last touchstone, almost her
conscience. His absences grew more frequent and extended. She found herself
thrown more and more into the company of Nepanthe, Turran, and Valther.
Nepanthe,
after Rolf, had been her best friend for years, but her constant company was
wearing. Nepanthe was a worrier.
Turran
remained a perfect gentleman, ever attentive and willing to entertain. She
began to fear what might happen. She tried to stay near Gerda, whose basilisk
eye could still the passion of a cat in heat.
Then Rolf
and Uthe disappeared. She thought it another of their jaunts till she
discovered their weapons missing.
"Gerda,
where've they gone?" she demanded. Like certain gods, the woman saw the
sparrows fall.
"Where
do you think? Kavelin, of course. With help for himself. Who'll be coming home
someday, I'll remind you, and be expecting everything as he left it."
Why
couldn't Rolf stay put? Was he sublimating his love? Or just searching for the
spear with his name?
Autumn
leaves were falling on the Littoral. Would it be getting on winter in Kavelin?
The night
Rolf left she sat up late with the Tear of Mimizan. Troubled, she used the
thing more as a focus for her attention than as a means of checking Bragi's
well-being.
The jewel
suddenly seized her attention. The light within was strong and growing
stronger. Bragi was in trouble.
The light
flashed suddenly, so brightly she was momentarily blinded. At the same instant
there was a scream from another room.
"The
children!" she gasped. She rushed toward the sound. It went on and on.
Behind her, the ruby painted her bedroom shades of blood.
The
screamer was Valther.
"She's
here!" the man kept saying. "She's here. She's loosed her
magic..."
"Who?"
Nepanthe asked repeatedly.
"Must
be Mist," Turran guessed. "Nothing else could've done this."
"But
why?"
"Who
knows the ways of Shinsan?"
"The
jewel," Elana interjected. "Before he screamed, it flashed so bright
it almost blinded me."
Nepanthe's
eyes met hers. Neither woman voiced her fear.
"She's
in Kavelin, then," said Turran. He remained thoughtful while. Nepanthe and
Elana calmed Valther, who began asking, "What happened?" and
"Where am I?"
"It
grows too complex," Turran mused aloud. "A three-sided war...
Nepanthe, get a couple of horses ready. And weapons. I'll look after
Valther."
"But..."
"Looks
like we're getting a second chance. Elana, the
Tear is
the most valuable thing in the west right now. Guard it well. If Kavelin goes,
get it to Varthlokkur."
Things
went so fast Elana had no time to protest. Before she exploded in frustration,
the brothers had gone. Valther remained puzzled, but seemed determined to
rectify his treason.
She and
Nepanthe stood on a balcony and watched them ride toward the coast road. Turran
hoped to overtake Rolf and Uthe.
A stir in
the gardens caught her eye. She said nothing to Nepanthe, merely peered
intently till she could make out a small old man nodding to himself. He had
spoken to Bragi at the landgrant. Quick as a bolting rabbit, he scooted out a
small side gate.
A moment
later she gasped. The old man, astride a winged horse, rose toward the moon and
sped eastward.
TEN: The Closing Circles
i) From the jaws of despair
Ragnarson
collapsed onto a rock. He could scarcely remain awake. The Nordmen gave up
their weapons meekly, though puzzledly. They couldn't believe that they had
been beaten by lesser men.
For
Bragi, too, it seemed a dream. It had taken two man-breaking weeks, but he had
slipped out of the destroying vise.
He had
fled Maisak certain he would never escape the Gap. Enemies had lain before and
behind him, and there had been no way to turn aside.
He had
outrun the Captal, almost flying into the arms of the eastern barons, who were
pursuing Sir Andvbur Kimberlin, then had made a way to the side, out of the
inescapable trap of a box canyon. At least, his enemies had thought it
inescapable.
While they
had taken the measure of one another and he had goaded them into fighting, his
men had cut stairs up the canyon wall. Abandoning everything but weapons, they
had climbed out one by one. Meanwhile, with a few Trolledyngjans and Itaskians,
Ragnarson had harassed the Captal's surviving Shinsaners so they wouldn't get
the best of the barons.
The
desultory, constricted, unimaginative combat between pretenders had taken four
days to resolve itself. The barons had had numbers, the Captal sorcery and men
fanatically devoted to his child-pretender.
Ragnarson
felt that, this time, he had won a decisive victory. He had won time. The
Captal couldn't muster new forces before winter sealed the Gap. The succession
might be determined by spring. And the eastern Nordmen had been crushed. For
the moment he and Volstokin commanded the only major forces in Kavelin. If he
moved swiftly, while winter prevented external interests from aiding favorites,
he could fulfill his commission.
And he
could return to Elana.
If Haroun
would let him. What Haroun's plans were he didn't know.
He had
sent his men up the stone stairs, over mountains, and into the Gap behind the
barons. The animals and equipment he had abandoned had become bait. They had
rushed to the plunder.
Ragnarson's
captains, led by Blackfang, had struck savagely. In bitter fighting they had
closed the canyon behind the Nordmen. Bragi and a small group had held the
stairs against a repeat of his own escape.
There was
no water in that canyon. Ragnarson's animals had already devoured the sparse
forage. The arrowstorm, once the mouth narrows had been secured, had been
impenetrable. The Nordmen had had no choice.
There had
been more to it, as there was to all stories: heroism of men pushing themselves
beyond believed limits; inspired leadership by Blackfang, Ahring, Al-tenkirk,
and Sir Andvbur; and unsuspected bits of character surfacing.
Ragnarson
studied Sir Andvbur. His judgment of the young knight's coolness and competence
had proven out during Kimberlin's operation around the headwaters of the
Ebeler. Under him, the Wessons had shown well against the barons, particularly
during disengagement and withdrawal.
But the
first thing he had done, after getting his troops safely into the box canyon,
had been to throw a tantrum.
"Both
leaders think they can handle us later," he had said.
"You
sound bitter."
"1
am. Colonel, you haven't lived with their arrogance. Kavelin is the richest
country in the Lesser Kingdoms, and that's not just in wealth and resources.
There're fortunes in human potential here. But you find Wesson, Siluro, and
Marena Dimura geniuses plowing, emptying chamberpots, and eating grubs in the
forests. They're not allowed anything else. Meantime, Nordmen morons are
pushing Kavelin toward disaster. You think it's historical pressure that has
the lower classes rebelling? No. It's because of the blind excesses of my
class... Men like Eanred Tarlson could help make this kingdom decent for
everybody. But they never get anywhere. Unless, like Tarlson, they obtain Royal
favor. It's frustrating. Infuriating."
Ragnarson
had made no comment at the time.
He hadn't
realized that Sir Andvbur had a Cause. He decided he had best keep an eye on
the man.
Blackfang
and Ahring took seats beside him. "We should get the hell out before
Shinsan tries for a rematch," said Haaken. "But there ain't nobody
here who could walk a mile."
"Not
much choice, then, is there? Why worry?"
Blackfang
shrugged.
"What
about the prisoners?" Ahring asked.
"Won't
have them long. We're going to Vorgreberg." He glanced up. The sky was
nasty again. There had been cold rain off and on since his withdrawal from
Maisak. It was getting on time to worry about wintering the army.
Two days
later, as he returned to the march, the Marena Dimura brought him a young
messenger.
"Wouldn't
be related to Eanred Tarlson, would you?" Bragi asked, as he broke Royal
seals.
"My
father, sir." .
"You're
Gjerdruni, eh? Your father said you were at university."
"I
came home when the trouble started. I knew he'd need help. Especially if
anything happened to him."
"Eh?"
But he had begun reading.
His
orders were to hasten to Vorgreberg and assume the capital's defense. Tarlson
had been gravely wounded in a battle with Volstokin. The foreigners were within thirty miles of
the city.
"Tell
her I'm on my way," he said.
The boy
rode off, never having dismounted. Ragnar-son wondered if he could get there in
time. The rain would f complicate river crossings in the lowlands. And
Tarlson's injuries might cost the Queen the support he brought her by force of
personality. He might lead his men to an enemy city. "Haaken! Ahring!
Altenkirk! Sir Andvbur!"
ii) Travels with the enemy
"Woe!
Am foolest of fools," Mocker mumbled over and over."
The
dungeon days had stretched into weeks, a parade of identical bores. Kirsten had
forgotten him due to other pressures. Those he could judge only by his guards.
Always sullen and vicious, they became worse whenever the Breitbarth fortunes
waned. News arrived only when another subversive was imprisoned.
One day
the turnkeys vanished. Every available man had been drafted to resist
Volstokin's perfidy.
After
crushing resistance, Vodicka visited the dungeons. Mocker tried to appear
small in his corner. The Volstokiners were hunting someone. And he had had a
premonition.
"This
one," he heard.
He looked
up. A tall, lean, angular man with a wide scar down one cheek considered him
with eyes of cold jade. Vodicka. Beside him Was another lean man, shorter,
dusky, with high, prominent cheekbones and a huge, hawklike nose. He wore
black. His eyes were like those of a snake.
Inwardly,
Mocker groaned. A shaghun.
"Hai!"
He bounced up with a broad grin. "Great King arrives in nick to rescue
faithful servant from mouldering death in dungeon of perfidious ally.
Breitbarth is treacher, great lord. Was plotting treason from beginning ..."
They
ignored him.
Mocker
sputtered, fumed, and told some of his tallest lies. Vodicka's men put him in
chains and led him away. No one explained why.
But he
could guess. They knew him. He had done El Murid many small embarrassments.
There was the time he had sweet-talked/kidnapped the man's daughter. There was
the time he had convinced an important general that he could reveal a short-cut
through the Kapenrungs, and had led the man into an army-devouring ambush.
Still,
daylight seen from chains was sweeter than dungeon darkness. And at least an
illusion of a chance to escape existed.
He could
have gotten away. Escape tricks were among his talents. But he saw a chance to
lurk on the fringe of the enemy's councils.
He got to
see a lot of daylight—and moonlight, starlight, and weather—the next few
months, while Volstokin's drunken giant of an army lumbered about Ravelin's
western provinces. Vodicka wanted his prizes near him always, but never
comfortable.
Mocker
didn't get along with his fellow prisoners. They were Nordmen, gentlemen who
had barely paid their ransoms to Bragi's agents when taken by Vodicka.
Ragnarson
had won himself a low, black place in Vodicka's heart. He had already plundered
the best from Ahsens, Dolusich, Gaehle, Holtschlaw, and Heiderscheid provinces.
Bragi's leavings were not satisfying the levies, who had been called from their
homes for a campaign that would last past harvest time.
Vodicka
kept escalating his promises to keep his army from evaporating.
Mocker
wished he could get out among the troops. The damage he could talk... But his
guards, now, were men of Hammad al Nakir. They were deaf to words not approved
by their shaghun. His chance to escape had passed him by. The looting improved
in Echtenache and Rubbelke, though there a price in blood had to be paid. In
Rubbelke, sixty miles west of Vorgreberg and fifteen north of the caravan
route, a thousand Nordmen met Volstokin on the plains before Woerheide.
Vodicka
insisted that his prisoners watch. His pride still stung from the difficulty he
had had forcing the Armstead ford.
Vodicka
was more talented at diplomacy and intrigue than at war, but refused to admit
his shortcomings.
Tons of
flesh and steel surged together in long, thunderous waves amidst storms of dust
and swirling autumn leaves. Swords like lightning flashed in the thunderheads
of war; the earth received a rain of blood and broken blades and bodies.
Volstokin's
knights began to flee. Enraged, Vodicka prepared to sacrifice his infantry.
Mocker
watched with delight and game-fan commentary. The Nordmen had no infantry of
their own. Unhorsed, without the protection of footmen, they would be easy prey
for Volstokin's more mobile men-at-arms.
The
shaghun asked Vodicka to hold the infantry. He would turn the tide.
Mocker
had encountered many wizards. This one was no mountain-mover, but was superior
for a survivor of El Murid's early anti-sorcery program. If he were an example
of what the Disciple had been developing behind the Sahel, the west was in for
some wicked surprises.
He
conjured bears from smoke, unnaturally huge monsters misty about the edges but
fanged and clawed like creatures bred only to kill. The Nordmen recognized them
harmless, but their mounts were impressed beyond control. They broke, many
throwing their riders in their panic.
"Now
your infantry," said the shaghun.
"Woe,"
Mocker mumbled, "am doomed. Am condemned to hopelessest of hopeless
plights. Will never see home of self again." His fellow prisoners watched
him curiously. They had never understood his presence. He had done nothing to
enlighten them. But he had learned from them.
He knew
who planned to betray whom, and when and how, and the most secret of their
changing alliances. But Mocker suspected their scheming no longer mattered.
Vodicka's and Bragi's armies were the real powers in Ravelin now.
Vodicka's
leadership remained indecisive. Twenty miles from Vorgreberg he went into camp.
He seemed to be waiting for something.
What came
was not what he wanted. From his seat outside Vodicka's pavilion, Mocker
listened to the King's curses when he discovered that the Queen's Own, though
inferior in numbers, were upon him. While the surprise attack developed,
Vodicka and the shaghun argued about why Tarlson was so confident.
Mocker
learned why they had been waiting.
They were
expecting another Siluro uprising.
But
Tarlson should have anticipated that possibility. Had he rounded up the
ringleaders?
Mocker
supposed that Tarlson, aware of his position, had elected to rely on boldness
and speed.
He
brought his horsemen in hard and fast, with little armor to slow them. From the
beginning it was obvious he was only mounting a raid in force.
Yet it
nearly became a victory. Tarlson's men raged through the camp, trailing
slaughter and fire. One detachment made off with cattle and horses, another
drove for the Royal pavilion.
Mocker
saw Tarlson at their head, shouted them on. But Vodicka's house troops and the
shaghun's bodyguards were hardened veterans.
The
shaghun crouched in the pavilion entryway, chanting over colored smokes. If
there had ever been a time for a Mocker trick, this was it. He had begun to
despair of ever winning free. He wracked his brain. It had to be something that
wouldn't get him killed if he failed.
A
not-too-kind fate saved him the trouble.
A wild
thrust by a dying spearman slipped past Tarlson's shield and found a gap behind
his breastplate. The Wesson plunged -from his saddle. With the broken spear
still protruding, he surged to his feet.
A youth
on a big gray, hardly more than a boy, came on like a steel-edged storm, drove
the Volstokiners back, dragged Eanred up behind him. Tarlson's troops screened
his withdrawal.
In
minutes it was over, the raiders come and gone like a bitter breath of winter
wind. Mocker wasn't sure who had
won. Vodicka's forces had suffered heavily, but the
Queen's men might have lost their unifying symbol...
Mocker
reassumed his muddy throne. His future didn't seem bright. He would probably
die of pneumonia in a few weeks.
"Ignominious
end for a great hero of former times," he told his companions. He cast a
promising, speculative glance the shaghun's way.
iii) Reinforcements for Ragnarson
Two
hundred men sat horses shagged with winter's approach, forming a column of gray
ragged veterans remaining death-still. The chill wind whipped their travel
cloaks and pelted them with flurries of dead leaves while promising sleet for
the afternoon. There were no young men among them. From beneath battered
helmets trailed strands predicting life's winter. Scars on faces and armor
whispered of ancient battles won in wars now barely remembered. Not one of that
hard-eyed catch of survivors wore a name unknown.
From
distant lands they had come in their youth to march with the Free Companies
during El Murid's wars, and now they were men without homes or homelands,
wanderers damned to eternal travel in search of wars. Before them, a hundred
yards away, beyond the Kavelin-Altean border, stood fifty men-at-arms in the
livery of Baron Breitbarth. They were Wessons, levies still scratching where
their new mail chafed, warriors only by designation.
Rolf
Preshka coughed into his hand. Blood flecked the phlegm. Paroxysms racked him
till tears came to his eyes.
From his
right, Turran asked, "You okay?"
Preshka
spat. "I'll be all right."
On
Preshka's left, Valther resumed sharpening his sword. Each time they halted,
sword and whetstone made soft, deadly music. Valther's eyes sought something
beyond the eastern horizon.
Preshka
waved a hand overhead.
The
column took on metallic life. The mercenaries spread out. Shields and weapons
came battle-ready.
The boys
beyond the border saw their scars and battered arms, and the dark hollows where
the shadows of the wings of death had passed across their eyes. They could
cipher the numbers. They shook. But they didn't back down.
"Be
a shame to kill them," said Turran.
"Murder,"
Preshka agreed.
"Where're
their officers? Nordmen might be less stubborn."
The
scrape scrape of Valther's whetstone carried during a lull in the wind. The
Kaveliners shuddered.
Rolf
turned. Several places to his right were three old Itaskians still carrying the
shields of Sir Tury Hawkwind's White Company. "Lother. Nothomb. Wittekind.
Put a few shafts yonder. Don't hurt anybody." Qualifications for the White
Company had included an ability to split a willow wand at two hundred paces.
The three
dismounted. From well-oiled leather cases they drew the bows that were their
most valued possessions, weapons from the hand of Mintert Reusing, the
acknowledged master of the bowmaker's trade. They grumbled together, picking
targets, judging the breeze.
As one
three shafts sped invisibly swift, feathered the heads of leopards in the coats
of arms on three tall shields.
The
Kaveliners understood. Reluctantly, they laid down their arms.
Preshka
coughed, sighed, signaled the advance. East of Damhorst he encountered a band
of Kil-dragon's foragers. They were lean men with a few scrawny chickens. The
larders of twice-plundered Nordmen were growing empty; Kildragon wouldn't
permit looting the underclasses. Since Armstead Reskird had been fighting a
guerrilla campaign from the Bodenstead forest, hanging on even after his
enemies had given up trying to hunt him down. He had lost a third of his
Itaskians, but had replaced them several times over with Wessons and Marena
Dimura. He and Preshka joined forces, continued along the caravan route toward
Vorgreberg. Other than Volstokin's army there was no force strong enough to resist them.
The Nordmen had collapsed.
Preshka
wondered where Bragi was. Somewhere deep in the east at last rumor. After Lake
Berberich, Lieneke, and Sedlmayr, he had disappeared.
Rolf
moved fast, avoiding conflict. There was little resistance. The faces he saw in
the ruined towns and castles had had all the fight washed out. He always
explained that he was bringing the Queen's peace. His force grew as angry,
defeated, directionless soldiers abandoned the Nordmen for the Queen.
He passed
south of Woerheide, heard the peasants mumbling about sorcery. It was chilling.
What did this shaghun have in his bag of tricks?
And where
was Haroun? As much as anyone, bin Yousif was responsible for events in
Kavelin. His dark ways were needed now. But there was hardly a rumor of the
man.
Then came
news of Tarlson's action near Vorgreberg, and of the Queen's forces wavering
while mobs bloodied the streets of the capital.
And still
no news of Bragi beyond a rumored baronial force having pursued him into the
Savernake Gap.
When
Preshka's scouts first reported contact with Volstokin's foragers, Rolf told
Turran, "We can't handle Vodicka by ourselves." He considered his
mercenaries. They had come on speculation, on the basis of his reputation.
Would they fight?
"We
can distract him," Turran said. "Eat up small forces."
Valther
sharpened his sword and stared eastward. Hints of mountain peaks could be seen
when weather permitted.
"He's
been dallying for months," Reskird observed. "Should've driven
straight to Vorgreberg."
"Was
it his idea?"
"Eh?"
"El
Murid's people might've conned him. So he'll be too unpopular to rule once he's
done their catspawing. Want to bet there's a Siluro candidate in the wings,
waiting till Bragi's been disposed of?"
"Might
take some disposing," Kildragon observed. "He's beaten Volstokin
before."
"This
mob's got a shaghun. A first-rater, you can bet."
"We
haven't reached a decision," Turran interjected.
Preshka
glanced his way, frowned. The man still hadn't explained his sudden urge to
join this venture.
"They
can't know much about us yet," said Kildragon. "So we sneak up on
them, hide out—that's hilly country—and give them a swift kick once in a while.
Keep them tottering till Vorgreberg gets organized. Way Vodieka's been
vacillating, he won't attack with us behind him."
They
sneaked, following a corridor of devastation so thorough Volstokin's foragers
no longer wandered there. On a gray, icy morning at winter's head, in a drizzle
that threatened to become snow, Preshka hurled his force at Vodieka's. He held
no one in reserve.
Vodieka's
troops were not surprised. Their trouble with Tarlson had taught them to be
alert. They reacted well.
Preshka's
lung was so bad his fighting capacity was nil. Though he retained overall
control, he assigned Kildragon tactical command. Because of his stubborn
insistence on joining the assault, Turran, Valther, and Uthe Haas stayed near
to guard him.
Cursing
the rain because of the damage it might do their weapons, the Itaskian bowmen
generated a shower of their own from behind Preshka's veterans. The recruits
held the flanks, to prevent encirclement of the thrust toward Vodieka's gaudy
pavilion.
A spasm
racked Preshka. He thought about Elana, the landgrant, and the heartaches he had
suffered there. Was this better?
The
Volstokiners fought doggedly, if with little inspiration. But Preshka's force
penetrated to the defenses of the Royal pavilion.
If he
could capture Vodicka, Rolf thought...
"Sorcery!"
Turran suddenly growled. He sniffed the wind like a dog. Valther did the same,
his head swaying like a cobra's about to strike.
"Hoist
me up," Preshka ordered. A moment later, as his feet returned to the
bloody mud, "The shaghun. And Mocker, in chains."
"Mocker?"
"Uthe,
can you see?"
"No."
"We've
got to get that shaghun. Otherwise, we're dead. Kildragon! Put your arrows
around the tent door." But his words were swept away by the crash. "I
think," he told Turran, "that I just brought you here to die. The attack
was a mistake."
Colored
smokes began boiling up before the pavilion.
iv) Vorgreberg
It was
raining hard. Bits of sleet stung Ragnarson's face and hands. The rising waters
of the Spehe, that formed the boundary between the Gudsbrandal Forest and the
Siege of Vorgreberg, rushed against his mount, threatened to carry them both
away. The far bank looked too soggy to climb.
"Where's
the damned ford?" he thundered at the Marena Dimura scout there.
The man,
though shivering blue, grinned.
"Is it, Colonel? Not so good, eh? "Not so good, Adamec."
They had
been pushing themselves to the limit for a week, a thousand men strung out
along remote, twisty ways, trying to come to the capital unannounced.
His mount
fought the current bravely, stubbornly, squished up the far bank. As Ragnarson
rose in his stirrups to survey the land beyond, the beast slipped, began
sliding, reared.
Rather
than risk being dragged under and drowned, Bragi threw himself into the flood.
He came up sputtering and cursing, seized the lance a passing soldier offered,
slithered up the bank behind him. Across his mind flashed images of the main
hall of his home, warm and dry, then Haroun's eagle's face. He staggered to his
feet cursing louder than ever.
"Move
it there!" he thundered. "It's open country up here. You men, get
that safety line across. I'll have your balls on a platter if somebody
drowns."
He
glanced northeast, wondered how Haaken was coming along. Blackfang, with the
bulk of the force and the prisoners, was hiking the caravan route, his function
for the moment that of diversion.
Bragi's
horsemen, exhausted, on staggering mounts, came out of the river by ones and
twos, ragged as bandits. Their banners were tattered and limp. The one thing
impressive was that they had done the things they had. He wished he could
promise them that the hard days would be over when they reached the city. But
no, the business in Kavelin was far from done.
The final
rush to Vorgreberg reminded Ragnarson more of a retreat than of a dash to
action. He waved to startled Wessons peeping from hovel doors, sometimes gave a
greeting in the Queen's name. He had the surviving Trolledyngjans with him, as
well as the best of the Itaskians and Wessons. Of the Marena Dimura he had
brought only a handful of scouts. They would be of no value in street fighting.
A few
columns of smoke rose on the horizon, fires still smoldering in the rain. As
they drew nearer Vorgreberg, they encountered bands of refugees camped in the
muddy fields. From these he learned that the Queen still ruled, but that her
situation was precarious. The rumor was circulating that she was considering
abdication to avoid further bloodshed.
That
would be in character, Ragnarson thought. All he had heard suggested that the
woman was too good for the ingrates she had inherited.
And what
of Volstokin?
The
refugees knew little. Vodicka had been camped west of the Siege, doing nothing,
for a long time. He was waiting. For what?
Ragnarson
kept pushing. The rain and sleet kept falling. One thing about the weather, he
thought. It would keep the mobs small.
He
reached the suburbs unannounced, unexpected, and laughed aloud at the panic he
inspired at the guardpost. While his Wesson sergeants answered their challenge, he
swept on toward the city wall.
At the
gate he again surprised soldiers, men hiding from the weather while the gate
stood open. Sloppy, he thought, driving through. In a time so tense, why were
they not alert?
Morale
problems, he imagined. Despair caused by Tarlson's injury. A growing suspicion
that it no longer mattered what they did.
That
would change.
The alarm
gongs didn't sound till he had reached the parklands around Castle Krief. As
the panicky carillon ran through the city, he ordered, "Break the
banners."
The men
bearing the old, tattered standards dropped back. Others removed sheaths from
fresh banners representing the peoples forming Ragnarson's command, as well as
standards he had captured in his battles. He made sure Sedlmayr's banner was up
near his own. The Royal standard he took in his own hand.
The
castle's defenders reached the ramparts in time to observe this bit of drama.
After a puzzled minute they broke into ragged cheers.
His eyes
met hers the instant he entered the vast courtyard. She stood on a tower
balcony. She was a tall woman, fairy slim, small-boned, with long golden hair
stringing in the downpour. Her eyes were of a blue deeper than a summer sky at
zenith. She wore simple, unadorned white that the rain had pasted to her slight
curves...
He
learned a lot about her in that moment, before turning to survey the
mud-spattered, weary, ragged cutthroats behind him. What would she think?
He dipped
his banner in salute. The others did the same.
His eyes
locked with hers again. She acknowledged the salute with a nod and smile that
almost made the ride worthwhile. He turned to shout orders to keep traffic
moving. When he looked back, she was gone.
The
political picture could be judged by the fewness of the servants who
helped with the animals. Nowhere did he see a
dusky Siluro face. Among the soldiery, Nordmen were
scarce. Virtually all were flaxen-haired Wessons.
One, a
youth trying to keep his head dry with his
shirttail, came running. "Gods, Colonel, you
made good time."
"Ah,
Gjerdrum." He smiled weakly. "You said to hurry."
"1
only got back last night myself. Come. Father wants to see you."
"Like
this?" He had had time to become awed. This was a Royal palace. In the
field, at war, a King was just another man to him. In their own dens, though,
the mighty made him feel the disreputable brigand he currently appeared to be.
"No
formalities around here anymore, sir. The Queen... She's a lady who'll
understand. If you see what I mean. The war, you know."
"Lead
on, then." He left billeting, mess, and stabling to his sergeants and the
Queen's.
Tarlson
was dying. Propped up in a huge bed, he looked like a man in the final stage of
consumption. Like a man who should have died long ago, but who was too stubborn
to go. He was too heavily bandaged to move.
She was
there too, in her rain-soaked garments, but she stayed in a shadowed corner.
Ragnarson nodded, went to Tarlson's side. He tried to avoid dripping and
dropping mud on the carpeting.
"I'd
heard you'd picked up another scar," he said.
Eanred
smiled thinly, replied, "I think this one had my name. Sit. You look
exhausted."
Ragnarson
shuffled.
From
behind him, "Sit down, Colonel. No need preserving furniture for Vodicka's
plunderers." She had a melodious voice even when bitter.
"So
you finally came," said Tarlson.
"I
was summoned."
"Frequently."
Tarlson smiled. "But you were right. We couldn't've won defending one
city. If I hadn't been rash, you might still be chastising barons."
"I
think they've had enough—though I'm out of touch. About the west and south you
know. And the east has surrendered."
"Ah?
Gjerdrum suggested as much, but wasn't clear."
"He
didn't waste any time asking questions."
"He's
got a lot to learn. You came swiftly. Alone?" "With a thousand. The
rest are afoot, with prisoners. As I've said before, I believe in
movement."
"Yes,
per Haroun bin Yousif. I want to talk about him. When the pressure is off.
Maybe your arrival will help." Ragnarson frowned.
"We
intercepted messages from Vodicka to the Siluro community. They're supposed to
revolt this week. I hope they'll reconsider now."
Ragnarson
remembered the laxity of the Queen's troops. "My men won't be much help if
it breaks tonight. And yours don't look good for anything." "What do
you suggest?" Tarlson asked. His
wounds had taken
the vinegar out of him,
Ragnarson thought. "Lock the gates. Use the palace guard to flood the
Siluro quarter. Post a curfew. Enforce it. They can't do anything if you grab
them as they leave their houses."
"And
leave the palace undefended?" "In my hands, you mean? Yes. Eanred,
you've got your suspicions. I'm not sure why. Let's just say our goals are
similar."
Tarlson
didn't apologize. "Ravelin makes one suspicious. No matter. Be your
intentions good or evil, we're in your hands. There's no one else to stop
Vodicka."
Ragnarson
didn't like it. He was becoming too much a principal in Ravelin's affairs.
"I
know my contract," he said stiffly. "I'll try to keep it. But the
loyalties of my men lie differently." "Meaning?"
"They've
been in Kavelin for months, fighting, and dying, for a cause not their own.
They're full of spirit. They haven't let loose for a long time. What happens
when they go for a drink and realize they haven't been paid a
farthing?..."
"Ah."
Tarlson glanced past Ragnarson. "Sums have been held in the Treasury,
Colonel," said the Queen. "Though you should be rich with the booty
you've taken."
Ragnarson
shrugged.
"And
what's happened to your fat friend?" Tarlson asked. "As I recall, he
disappeared at the Scarlotti ferries."
"That's
a ghost that's haunted me since. I don't know. I sent him to Damhorst. All I've
heard is that he might be in Breitbarth's hands."
"He
may be with Vodicka now," said Tarlson. "I saw a chain of prisoners
during the attack..."
"Was
he all right?"
"Not
sure it was him. I just caught a glimpse of a fat man hopping around screaming.
Then I got spear bit."
"That's
him. I wonder what Vodicka's doing with him?"
"What're
your plans?"
"Don't
have any. I was called to defend Vorgreberg. I didn't extend my imagination
beyond getting here."
"There're
two considerations. The Siluro. Vodicka. The Siluro we can handle now. If we
can send Vodicka packing before spring, we might have an edge on the barons
next summer."
"Next
summer you'll have real problems."
"Eh?"
"The
Captal of Savernake."
"What
about him?" Tarlson's face darkened. He stole a glance past Ragnarson.
"He's
got his own army and Pretender up there. A child about six. I tried to get him,
but..." He stopped because of the emotions parading across Tarlson's face.
"But
what?"
"His
allies. It was pure luck that we got out. Those people... The grimmest soldiers
in the world."
"There
were suspicions... The King told me... Who? El Murid?"
"Shinsan."
His
sibilant whisper fostered a dreadful silence broken only by a gasp from behind
him. Tarlson's face became so pale and immobile that Ragnarson feared he had
suffered a stroke.
"Shinsan?
You're sure?"
"Blackfang's
bringing the proof. Armor from their dead. And the child... He's training with
Mist herself. She was at Maisak."
"The
child... Did she seem well?" The Queen's voice held such excited interest
that Ragnarson half-turned. Then it added up. The child was hers... Then,
stunningly, the "She" reached his consciousness.
"Shinsan!"
Tarlson gasped.
Ragnarson
turned back. Despite his condition, Eanred was trying to rise.
He almost
made it. Then he collapsed, fighting for breath. Bloody foam rose to his lips. l"Maighen!"
the Queen shouted. "Find Doctor Wach-tel! Gjerdrum! Come help your
father."
As the
boy rushed in, Ragnarson went to the Queen. She seemed ready to faint. He
helped her retain her feet.
"Eanred,
don't die," she begged softly. "Not now. What'll I do without
you?"
When
aloofness and dignity abandoned her, Ragnarson caught a glimpse of the
frightened woman behind the facade. So young, so defenseless.
Ignoring
his filth, she clung to him, head over his heart. "Help me!" she
begged.
What else
could he do?
v) Hour of reprisal
Mocker
thought the crash and clash and screaming meant that the Queen's Own had come
back for a sudden rematch. He was so sick that he didn't look up. Why bother?
The
clangor moved closer. For a long time he did nothing more ambitious than blow
his nose on his sleeve. He was sorry immediately. The stench of the corpse five
places to his right reached him despite the downpour. The fellow had died four
days earlier. No one had bothered to remove him. As the Siluro uprising
continued to be delayed, the Volstokiners became increasingly lax, increasingly
defeatist. Vodicka and the shaghun had had bitter arguments about it. Vodicka
himself had become dull-witted and unconcerned.
Mocker's
stomach turned. The little he had had to eat had been moldy, spoiled. Staggering
to his feet, he dragged his nearer chainmates along in his rush to the cathole
latrine five paces away.
While he
squatted with the skirts of his robe around his waist, a spent arrow plopped
into the mud nearby. He reached, slipped, fell, came up cursing. The other
prisoners cursed him back. A quarter of their number had died already, and
disease soon would have them all—and Vodicka's army as well. Dysentery was
endemic. In the chain, now, there were no friends, just animals who growled at
one another.
The arrow
was Itaskian. No native weapon would have used one so long.
He wanted
to shout for joy, but didn't have the energy.
He had
long despaired of having this opportunity, yet he had prepared. It had taken
slow, careful work. He had wanted no one, especially his favor-seeking
companions, to discover what he was doing.
First
there had been the chains. Each man's right hand was linked to the left ankle
of the man on his right. He had, for days, been grinding away at a link with
bits of sandstone. That done to his satisfaction, he had gone on to provide
himself with weapons.
When the
shaghun and his gaudy smokes appeared at the pavilion entrance, Mocker broke
the weakened link and took the best of his weapons from within his robe.
Making
the sling had been more difficult than cutting the chain. Everyone was always
toying with the latter...
He had
three stones, though he expected to get but one shot before being brought down
himself. And it had been years...
The
sling, twisted of fabric strips from his robe, hummed as he wound up. A few
apathetic eyes turned his way.
He let
fly.
"Woe!"
he moaned. He shook his left fist at the sky, got a faceful of rain. He had
missed by such a wide margin that the shaghun hadn't noticed that he was being
attacked.
But no
one gave Mocker away. No dusky guards came
to pound him back to the mud. The attack was
ferocious. Must be some bad fighters out there, he thought.
He
turned, glared through the downpour, almost immediately spied Reskird
Kildragon. His hopes surged. The best fighters in this end of the world.
His
second stone scored. Not with the eye-smashing accuracy he had had as a boy,
but close enough to shatter the shaghun's jaw. The soldier-wizard staggered
from his smokes, one hand reaching as if for help. He came toward the
prisoners.
Mocker
checked the haggard Nordmen. Some were beginning to show interest.
Wobbling
on legs weak with sickness, he went to the shaghun. He swung his length of
chain, beat the man to the mud.
Still no
interference. But dusky faces were beginning to glance back from the fighting.
He used the shaghun's dagger to finish it quickly.
"Vodicka
now," he said, rising with the bloody blade. But through the uproar he
heard Kildragon bellowing for his men to close up and withdraw.
And there
was no way he could reach them.
"Am
doomed," he muttered. "Will roast slow on spit, no skald to sing last
brave feat." His hands, deft as those of the pickpocket he had been when
Haroun had picked him up early in the wars, ran through the shaghun's garments,
snatched everything loose. He then scooted round the pavilion's rear, hoping to
vanish before anyone noticed what had happened.
The
Nordmen watched with eyes now jealous and angry. From within the pavilion came
Vodicka's querulous voice. He sounded drunk or ill.
Then came
shouts as the murder was discovered.
ELEVEN: Closing Tighter
i) Dying
Death
just did not belong in the day. It had dawned bright, warm, and almost
cloudless. By noon the streets had dried.
"It
isn't right," Gjerdrum said, staring out a window near his father's bed.
"In stories it always comes during a stormy night, or on a morning heavy
with mist."
The Queen
sat beside the bed, holding Tarlson's hand. He had been in a coma since the
previous afternoon. "My father calls Death the ultimate democrat,"
she said. Deep shadows lurked beneath her eyes. "Also the indisputable
autocrat and the great leveler. She's not impressed by anything or anyone. Nor
by what's fitting and proper."
"Mother
wouldn't come. She's locked herself in their bedroom... Says she won't come out
till he comes home. Because he always did. He'd take wounds that'd kill a bear,
but he always came home. But she knows he won't make it this time. She's trying
to bring him back with her memories."
"Gjerdrum,
if there was anything... You know I'd..." "I was conceived in that
room. When he was just another Wesson footman. The night before the Queen's
Own and
the guard went to meet El Murid in the Gap. Why didn't he ever move? He took
over some of the other rooms, but he never moved..."
"Gjerdrum!"
He
turned.
"His
eyes. They moved."
Tarlson's
eyes opened. He seemed to be grasping for his bearings. Then, in a hoarse
whisper, "Gjerdrum, come here."
"Don't
push yourself, father."
"There're
some things to say. She came, but I couldn't go. Be quiet. Let me hurry. She's
waiting. What's Ragnarson doing?"
"Cleaning
up the Siluro. He slept a couple hours, then took the regiment and Guard into
the quarter. All we've had from him since is prisoners and wagons full of
weapons. Doing a house-to-house. They're screaming. But anyone who argues gets
arrested. Or killed."
"Gjerdrum,
I don't trust that man. I'm not sure why. It may be bin Yousif. There's a
connection. They've fought each other, and while their employers got destroyed,
they got rich. He knows too much about what's going on. And he may be working
for Itaskia. Some of his 'mercenaries' are Itaskian regulars."
He lay
quietly for several minutes, regaining strength. I "It's a game of
empires," he said at last, "and Kavelin's the board.
"Gjerdrum,
I made a promise to the King. I've tried to keep it. I pass it to you, if you
will... Though the gods know how you'll manage. Any way you can... Tell your
mother... I'm sorry... My duty... This time she'll have to come to me. Where
the west wind blows... She'll understand... I'll... I'll..."
His eyes
slowly closed. For a moment Gjerdrum thought he had fallen asleep. At last, of
the Queen, "Is he?... Did he?..."
"Yes."
They
spent few tears. Waiting for the inevitable had dulled its painful edge.
"Gjerdrum,
find Colonel Ragnarson. Tell him to come to my chambers. And inform the
Ministers that there'll be a meeting at eight. Don't tell anyone what's happened."
"Ma'am." He snapped a weak salute. In duty there was surcease from
pain.
ii) Interview
Ragnarson
sat stiffly erect as his horse clop-clopped through empty streets. He had to
keep an iron grip. He was so tired he had begun seeing things.
A
Trolledyngjan rode at either hand, ready for trouble. But they didn't expect
anything. The populace had been cowed. They appeared only in brief flashes, in
cracks between curtains.
Today
Vorgreberg, tomorrow the Siege. Next, Vo-dicka. And Kavelin before spring. Get
the kingdom united in time to meet the Captal and Shinsan.
The
palace was as deserted as the city. With the Queen's go-ahead, he had sent out
every man able to bear arms. They had met little resistance once it was clear
they would not tolerate it.
She was
pacing when he reached her, pale, wringing her hands. Her eyes were shadowed.
"Earired
died."
She
nodded. "Colonel, it's falling apart. My world. I'm not a strong person. I
tend to run rather than face things. Eanred was my strength, as he was my
husband's. I don't know what to do now. I just want to get away..."
"Why'd
you call me?" He had known from the moment their eyes met that she would
appreciate strength and directness more than flourishes and formalities.
"I'm a sword-for-hire. An outsider. An untrustworthy one, so Eanred
thought."
"Eanred
trusted no one but the Krief. Sit down. You've been up long enough."
She was a
startling woman. No Royal person he had ever encountered would have treated a
blankshield as an equal. And no queen or princess would have had him to her
private chambers unchaperoned...
"You're
smiling. Why?"
"Uh?
Thinking of Royalty. Princesses. A long time ago, in Itaskia... Well, no
matter. An unsavory episode, seen from here."
"Brandy?"
She had
startled him again. A Queen serving a commoner...
"They're
stuffy in Itaskia? Your Royalty?"
"Usually.
Why'd you want to see me?"
"I'm
not sure. Some questions. And maybe because I need someone to listen." She
walked slowly to a window.
Watching
her move, Ragnarson's thoughts slipped into channels far from respectful.
"I've
called a conference of Ministers. I'll either abdicate and return to my
father..."
"My
Lady!"
"...
or appoint you Marshal and put it all on you." She turned, her gaze
locking with his.
He was
flabbergasted. "But... Marshal?... I never commanded more than a battalion
before this spring. No. You'd get too much resistance. Better pick a Rave-liner
..."
"Who
could I trust? Who's commanded who hasn't been in touch with the rebels?
Eanred. But he's dead. Even my ministers have hedged their bets."
"But..."
"And
though I hate to speak ill of the dead, Eanred couldn't've handled it. He was
at his best as Champion. As a field commander he was mediocre. The King
understood this."
She
retrieved the decanter, poured more brandy.
"He
wasn't strong, the King. Couldn't force his will. But he knew men. He could
talk to someone fifteen minutes and tell all about them. He knew who could be
trusted and who couldn't, and who would be happiest and do best in which post.
I wish he were here."
"You
need to trust me, but don't know if you can. Ask your questions."
She moved
a chair to face him. "What's your connection with the Itaskian
Crown?"
"Appointive
landgrave. Non-hereditary sort of half-title with a reserve commission. Army.
Brevet-Captain of
Infantry.
I get the use of, and title to, formerly non-productive border territory in
return for playing sheriff and defending the frontier. For political reasons
I'm currently active on the War Ministry rolls. My assignment is to prevent El
Murid from gaining control of the Savernake Gap and flanking the
Tamerice-Hellin Daimiel Line. I'm also a genuine Guild Colonel, though on the
Citadel's bad side. My Itaskian assignment doesn't conflict with my contract to
yourself."
"At
the moment. Your orders might change. Anything else?"
He
shrugged. "What?"
"Men
the King trusted he sent on trade missions. With other assignments. He knew
Kavelin's importance. Those men have continued reporting. For instance:
Tamerice was in touch with the Wessons in Sedlmayr and Delhagen. Altea has
considered annexing Dolusich, Vidusich, and Gaehle. Anstokin plans the same for
the lower tier of provinces in Volstokin, all the way to the Galmiches—assuming
we best Vodicka."
"One
King always tries to profit from another's distress. The Sedlmayr matter is
settled. Altea, I'm sure, prefers friendship and cooperation to war over wastelands.
And Anstokin has a historical claim to most of those provinces."
"I
was leading up to the fact that we have people in Itaskia. Our best. When your
King stomps, the ground rocks throughout the west."
Ragnarson's
immediate reaction was so what?Then he asked, "In whose party?"
"Excuse me?"
"You
suspect Itaskian intentions. I want to point out that we're split. Each party
controls part of the government. The Grey-fells party is pro-El Murid. The
other, intensely anti-El Murid. I wondered if your spies took that into
account."
"Which
line do you follow?"
"Greyfells
and El Murid have been my enemies since the wars."
"I
believe you, Colonel. But there's still Haroun bin Yousif. What does he
want?"
"We're
as close as men can be. But his mind is like one of those puzzle boxes where, when you
finally get it open, all you've got is another box."
"But
you've got an idea?"
"A
guess. Based on geography. He's ready to go back to Hammad al Nakir. There's no
better base than Kavelin. Al Rhemish is just over the Kapenrungs. If he could
seize the holy places, he might manage a restoration. We only see the fanatics
outside. Behind the Sahel, El Murid's support is far from unanimous."
"I
see. A problem. But one that can be dealt with when the time comes. He won't
have calculated Shinsan into his plans." She rose, returned to the window.
"The city? Can it be pacified? The Siege?"
"Those
are battles already in hand. I'm looking beyond, to Vodicka."
"Good.
There's more to be said and asked, but later. I want you to rest now. That's an
order. I want you fresh after the council. If I stay on..." She came to
him, took his hands in hers, turned them palms up, studied them, then looked
him in the eye. "I'd be in these hands. Be gentle."
iii) Confrontations
Ragnarson
had the feeling that a long time had passed. He lay drifting on the edge of
sleep, his conscience telling him he should be up and busy, but instead he
continued wondering how much meaning he dared attach to the Queen's final
words.
Came a
knock. "Enter," he grumbled, rising to a sitting position. A lone
candle illuminated his room.
Gjerdrum
stuck his head in. "Sorry to wake you, Colonel. We've caught a vagrant.
Hard to understand him, but I think he says he knows you."
"Eh?
Fat man? Dark?"
"Looks
like he used to be fat. But he's sick now. I'd say he's had a rough time for a
couple months."
"Where
is he? Let me get my pants on. How's the
chances of me getting something new to wear?"
Gjerdrum
glanced at the near-rags he was donning. "I'll try to find
something."
"The
Queen. How'd her council go?" "Still on."
"Lead
away. Where's he at?" "Dungeon. We thought that'd be safest." It
was Mocker. Mocker in pathetic shape. He snoozed on a straw-strewn floor.
"Open
up," he told the turnkey. "Quietly. Don't wake him."
There had
to be a trick. He could not welcome Mocker without one. He hunkered down and
tickled the fat man's ear. He had grown an ugly, scraggly beard. This Ragnarson
tweaked gently. "Wake up, darling," he said in a squeaky falsetto.
Mocker
smiled, placed one hand over Ragnarson's. He frowned in consternation—then
bounced up ready for a fight.
Bragi
roared, rocked back on his heels. "Got you!" "Hai!" Mocker
groaned in a weak imitation of his former self. "Greatest of great spies
risks life and limb of very self-important self, endures months of
incarceration, debilitation, and torture at behest of friend, weary unto death
and on edge of pneumonia, with Volstokiners hordes pursuing, treks thirty miles
godforsaken country after redoubtedly—redoubtably?—singlehandedly slaying
arch-shaghun of Volstokin advisers, shaghun-general direct from councils at Al
Rhemish, thereby saving bacon of ingrate associates Preshka and Kildragon, and
am welcomed to saved city by dungeon-chucking natives too ignorant to recognize
renowned self, there to be set upon by hairy Trolledyngjan of dubious
masculinity and questionable morals. Woe! In whole universe is no justice. Very
demons of despair pursue self through vale of tears called life..."
Ragnarson
got lost in the twists and turns. "Rolf's here? In Kavelin?" If Rolf
had joined Reskird, Elana might have too.
"Said
same, no? Preshka, Rolf. Iwa Skolovdan. Former Guild Captain. Age thirty-six.
Nineteen years service. Began with Lauder's Company..."
"All
right. All right. Give me the part about the shaghun again."
Mocker
regained his verve while he detailed his escape.
"Come
on," said Ragnarson. "We'll clean you up and have the Royal physician
look you over." On the way, Ragnarson bombarded his friend with questions.
Each answer pleased him more than the last.
"Gjerdrum,"
he said, as they neared his room, "scare up the physician. Then have all
officers assemble in the officers' mess. Have them bring maps of the area where
Vodicka's camped. And I want my Marena Dimura there. Then meet me at the
council chamber. How do I get there?"
"But
you can't..."
"Watch
me. I could care less about being respectful to a gang of lard-assed Nordmen
hypocrites. Tell me."
Reluctantly,
the youth gave directions.
"Carry
out your orders. Wait. What the hell time is it, anyway?"
"Around
midnight."
Ragnarson
groaned. He had wasted eight hours sleeping.
Two
palace guards blocked the council chamber door. "Announce me," he
told the senior.
"Sorry,
sir. Lord Lindwedel left instructions that they weren't to be disturbed for any
reason."
"Eh?
Why? What if something happened?"
The
soldier shrugged. "I got the idea they were going to have it out with Her
Majesty."
"Ah."
The old snake had found out about Eanred.
"You'd
better get out of the way." His cold determination made the younger guard
gulp.
"No,
sir," the senior said. "Not till my orders change." His knuckles
whitened on the haft of his short ceremonial pike.
Bragi hit
him with a left jab. His helmet clanged off the wall. Ragnarson snatched his
pike, knocked the second soldier's feet from beneath him, rattled the first's
brains again, then hit the door. It was neither locked nor barred. He crashed
through.
Just in
time.
Seven old
Nordmen surrounded the Queen like lean gray wolves a terrified fawn. She had
been weeping, was about to sign a document. The triumph on the ministers'
faces, before they turned, told Ragnarson he had guessed right. They had
bullied her into abdicating.
He took
three swift steps, smashed the pike head down on the document. Hurling
ministers aside, Bragi seized the document, flung it into a nearby fireplace.
Lindwedel
shouted, "Guards!"
"Keep
your mouth shut, you old vulture!" Ragnarson growled, drawing his sword.
"Or I'll cut you a new one about four inches lower." He backed to the
door, locked and barred it.
He wished
he had a few Trolledyngjans along. He would have to hurry instead...
"You
men get over against that wall." He moved to the Queen's side. She
appeared uncertain whether to be grateful or angry. He scowled at a minister
edging toward the door.
"If
I were younger, I'd..."
"You'd
get your ass killed. Haven't met a Nordmen yet who could butcher a chicken
without help. Let's get this settled civilly. We'll let the lady make up her
mind on her own."
Their
glares promised trouble. There would soon be plots to eliminate the foreigner
who defended the foreign Queen.
"Why'd
you bust in?" the Queen whispered.
"Friend
of mine just arrived," he replied softly. "From Vodicka's camp.
Wanted you to know what he said. When I got trouble outside, I figured these
old buzzards were up to something."
"What
was so important?"
"Vodicka's
shaghun is dead, Vodicka has gone insane, and his army has been decimated by
sickness. H is men are deserting. My associate Kildragon has placed a force
west of them as an anvil against which I can hammer them. I'll begin tightening
the noose in the morning."
"You're
pushing too hard. Killing yourself. You've got to rest sometime."
"You
rest between wars," he muttered. Then, "We can't ease off. There're
still too many variables. And Shinsan's vultures are perched on the crags of
the Kapenrungs."
"You
won't wait for your man Blackfang?"
"No.
But he'll be here soon. I don't intend getting in a fight anyway, just to
maneuver Vodicka into a bad position."
"The
numbers don't look good."
"Numbers
aren't important. Still want to run away? To quit when we've got a glimmer of
hope?"
"I
don't know. I wasn't made for this. Intrigue. War."
"I
promise you, if it's within my power, that I won't go till I can leave you with
the quietest country in the Lesser Kingdoms. If I have to leave rebels hanging
like apples from every tree."
"But
you're a mercenary. And have a family and home, 1 hear."
Did she
sound just the least disappointed? "I have no home while the Greyfells
party retains any power. The appointment?"
"They'll
never agree."
"Bet?"
He turned to the Ministers. "Her Majesty wishes your confirmation of my
appointment as Marshal of Ravelin."
Some
turned red and sputtered. Lord Lindwedel croaked, "Never! No base-born
foreigner..."
"Then
we'll hang you and appoint some new Ministers."
The door
rattled as someone tried it. The Ministers perked up.
Ragnarson
could force his will here, he knew, but how would he keep them from reneging?
Haroun's
would be the simplest solution. He would have them murdered.
"You
wouldn't dare!"
Men
smashed against the door.
"Try
me. The charge is treason. I believe Her Majesty will support it."
Axes
began splintering the door.
The Queen
touched his arm. "Appearances will decide this. Back into the corner like
you're defending me."
She had
chosen. He smiled, did as she suggested. She attached herself to his left arm
in the classic pose of damsel hanging on protector.
Lord
Lindwedel surrendered. "All right, damn it. Have the documents
prepared."
Bragi
held his pose long enough for Gjerdrum and the Queen's troops to catch a
glimpse. Thus it was that, dishonestly, he won their loyalty.
iv) The challenge
There was
snow on the ground, a sprinkling scarcely thicker than frost, tainted ruby in
the dawnlight. A harsh cold wind stirred skeletal trees. Bragi, astride a
shivering horse at wood's edge, glanced up the road that snaked over the hill
masking Vodicka's camp. With him were the irrepressible Mocker and a dozen of
his own and the Queen's men. Mocker blew into shaking hands and bemoaned the
impulse that had brought him into the field.
For a
week Ragnarson had maneuvered his forces into position, hoping for a fiat that
would spare lives. He would need every man in the spring.
To the
north, blocking the route to Volstokin, were Blackfang and Ahring with the
Trolledyngjans and Itaskians. Sir Andvbur, for the moment commanding the
Queen's Own and palace guard, held the routes eastward. In the south lay
Altenkirk with eleven hundred Wessons and Marena Dimura. The woods behind
Vodicka were held by Kildragon and Preshka.
Everyone
had been in position since the day before. The men had been given a night's
rest and plenty to eat... This one he wouldn't hurry. It would be his most
crucial battle, one that, in its handling more than its winning, could make him
as Marshal of Kavelin.
"You'd
better get going," he told Mocker.
The fat
man kicked his new donkey into a walk. He had volunteered to find Haroun. He
would skirt the battle zone and, hopefully, would know the outcome before passing
Kildragon's last outpost. He also bore messages to Vodicka's family.
Ragnarson
turned to another of his companions. "Bring her out."
Against
his advice and over the protests of her supporters, the Queen had insisted on
joining him.
In
minutes she was at his side, bundled in furs that concealed ill-fitting chain
mail. She bubbled.
Ragnarson
nodded. "We begin." He urged his mount forward. She kept pace. His
party trailed by twos.
Ragnarson's
heart hammered. His stomach flipped and knotted. Doubts plagued him. Had he
chosen the best course? Sure, it was the way to slay the rumors about him not
leading from the front, but... What if Vodicka refused his challenge?
He leaned
toward the Queen, said, "If you bring as much excitement and stubbornness
to ruling as you do to getting in a fight, you'll..."
Her thigh
brushed his. He wasn't sure, but it seemed she'd guided her mount the slightest
bit closer to his. He remembered riding thigh by thigh with Elana, with mortal
dangers waiting to strike.
"You're
a beautiful woman," he croaked, forcing the compliment. Then he
ameliorated his boldness with, "You shouldn't risk yourself like this. If
we're taken..."
There was
red in her face when she looked his way. Had he angered her?
"Marshal,"
she said, "I'm a woman. Noble by birth, Queen in marriage to a man long
dead, and leader by circumstance. But a woman."
He
thought he understood. And that was more frightening than anything that might
be waiting beyond the hill.
They
crested that hill. "You're sure the messages went out?" He had asked
her to send commands to every Nordmen to post public pledges of fealty or face
banishment or death. News of today's events would pursue the messengers, would
convince or condemn.
"Yes.
Slight exasperation.
He
studied the encampment. Vodicka had restructured it along Imperial lines, throwing up
ramparts and cutting trenches. Towers for archers were under construction. It
had taken two attacks for Vodicka to learn that he wasn't on bivouac.
"Banners,"
Ragnarson growled over his shoulder. They had been noticed.
The Krief
family ensign broke beside a white parlay flag. Ragnarson advanced till they
were just beyond the range of a good Itaskian bow. This would be the point for
one of Greyfells' rogues to materialize.
They
waited. And waited. The nearest gate finally opened. Horsemen came forth.
"Here,"
Ragnarson told the Queen, "is where, if I were Haroun, you'd learn the
difference in our thinking. He'd make some innocuous signal and our bowmen
could cut them down. Haroun goes for the throat."
Vodicka
wasn't with the party.
"They
look like they've spent a year besieged already," the Queen remarked. She
was old enough to remember the bitter sieges in her homeland.
Ragnarson
signaled an interpreter. The common speech of Volstokin was akin to Marena
Dimura. The upper classes used a different dialect.
The party
was a mixed bag including several senior officers of Volstokin's army, a few of
El Murid's advisors, Kaveliner turncoats, and a man with a bow who looked
Itaskian.
A
Kaveliner recognized the Queen, babbled excitedly to his companions.
"Tell
them our business is with Vodicka," Ragnarson told his interpreter. The
lingua franca of the upper classes was the speech of Hellin Daimiel.
An
officer replied, "I speak for King Vodicka. No need for the
interpreter." He spoke flawless upper-class Itaskian. "I'm Commander
of the Household, Seneschal Sir Farace Scarna of Liolios."
"Guild
Colonel Bragi Ragnarson, Marshal of Kavelin, with and speaking for Her Supreme
Highness Fiana Melicar Sardyga ip Krief, Queen of Kavelin, daughter and ally of
His Highness Dusan Lorimier Sardygo, Lord Protector of Sacuescu, the Bedelian
League, and the
Auszura
Littoral, and Prince Viceregal to Their Majesties the Kings of Dunno Scuttari
and Octylya." Which didn't mean much, Sacuescu being powerless, Dunno
Scuttari still recovering from the wars, and Octylya an Itaskian Protectorate
as subject to pressure from the Queen's enemies as friends.
"What
do you want?"
Ragnarson
was pleased by Sir Farace's businesslike manner. A fighting man all his life,
Bragi judged.
"I
challenge Vodicka to individual combat. And demand the surrender of himself and
his forces. The former as Champion, the latter as Marshal."
"Champion?"
"Your
King has had that much success, Sir Farace," the Queen interjected.
Sir
Farace said something in his own tongue. Reluctantly, all but he withdrew a
hundred yards.
"Pull
back the same distance, Dehner," Bragi ordered.
"The
lady too, and it please you."
Ragnarson
turned. She was putting her stubborn face on. "My Lady."
"Must
I?"
"I
think so."
Once they
were alone, scant swordswings apart, Sir Farace asked, "Man to man? Not as
Seneschal and Marshal?"
"All
right."
"Can
you beat us?"
"Easily.
But I'll starve you out instead. I've talked to deserters. I know what's going
on inside."
"Damned
foreigners... Intrigues and magic. And greed. Destroyed an army and a
King." He paused, spat. "I'd surrender. Save what I could. But I'm
not His Majesty. The weaker he gets, the more he grows sure we can finish
Kavelin if we'll just hold on till we get another sorcerer from Al
Remish." He spat again. "He won't surrender. He might fight."
"You
could sally, come over the hill, and surrender."
"No."
"I
didn't think so. How bad is he?"
"Very.
Healthy, he'd give you a battle. He fought
Tarlson
to a draw once. Years ago. He wears the scar proudly."
"What
happens if I kill him? In Volstokin?"
"You
wouldn't notice the change. His brother, whom you defeated at Lake Berberich,
succeeds. The war goes on."
"How,
with Volstokin in ruins and threatened by famine?"
"The
rumors are true?"
"I
know bin Yousif."
"Why
this confrontation?"
"This
army's a nuisance. I've got more dangerous enemies to worry about. Suppose I
grabbed Vodicka and threw him in a cell somewhere? Kept him in style, but
didn't ransom him?"
"A
regency. Probably the Queen Mother. His Majesty's brother, Jostrand, isn't
that popular."
"And
this infamous alliance with El Murid?"
"Dead.
Dead as the Emperors in their graves."
"Then
imprisonment might best serve both Volstokin and Kavelin."
"Perhaps."
"A
gift to show my feeling that there should be peace between us. Anstokin moves
with spring. They intend to take the provinces above Lake Berberich, all the
way to the Galmiches."
Sir
Farace grew pale. He started to say something, nodded. Then, "Of course.
We should've anticipated it."
"Our
sources are unimpeachable."
"I
believe you. I'll talk to His Majesty, but I guarantee nothing. Good
fortune."
"The
same." He said it to Sir Farace's dwindling back.
v) Personal combat
"Well,
what'd he say?" the Queen demanded. "We might work something
out." "You won't attack?"
"Not
if I can help it."
"But..."
"I
didn't get this old fighting for fun. Let's get back to the woods. This wind's
killing me."
While the
others piled brush into a windbreak and got a fire going, and saw to the horses
and weapons, Bragi and the Queen sat on a log and stared at Vodicka's
encampment. Bragi was looking for weaknesses, she the gods knew what.
"Beckring,"
Ragnarson said presently. "Find Sir Andvbur. Tell him I need a crossbow, a
pony or his runtiest horse, and a Cerny." The Cerny, a breed developed
near that small city in Vorhangs, was a gigantic horse meant to bear the most
heavily armored knights.
"Now
what?" the Queen asked.
"Hedging
my bets. That's another way you stay alive in this business."
"I
don't understand."
"I
just remembered. Haroun isn't the only guy who thinks his way. His whole
race... Can you kill a man? If he's trying to kill you?"
"I
don't know."
"Better
think about it. Better be ready when the time comes." He began fiddling
with his boots.
Beckring
brought the animals and weapons just as a party left Vodicka's camp. Ragnarson
explained as he hurried his people to the meeting point. He rode the Cerny, she
the pony. The men crowded close so they could hear.
When the
Volstokiners arrived, without Vodicka or Sir Farace, Ragnarson had the Cerny
sideways to them with the Queen masked behind him. He presented his shield
side.
Sir
Farace had been replaced by an idiot, a terrified, drooling victim of some
disease that had crippled both brain and body.
Ragnarson
had anticipated the action. Vodicka had done the same in other wars. He ignored
the man, concentrated on the "advisers."
They were
too studiedly disinterested. He locked gazes with a hawk-nosed veteran who wore
a mouth-corner scar that drew his lips into a permanent smirk.
Smirk-mouth's
eyes flicked, for the scantest instant, to the man who was to provide his
diversion...
Ragnarson
spurred the Cerny. His right hand, already low, yanked the throwing knife from
his boot, snapped it at Scar-mouth's throat. The Queen, no longer masked,
discharged the crossbow into the chest of a second rider while all eyes
remained on Bragi. His party produced their weapons and surrounded her. Before
the startled Volstokiners, unprepared for their allies' treachery, recovered,
Bragi had gotten round their flank. There he met a third adviser in a flurry of
swordplay, unhorsed him, and faced the Volstokiners as they turned to run.
The mixup
was brief. Bragi lost one man. The other party lost five before they surrendered.
Ragnarson
dismounted, removed his ax from his wargear, separated Scar-mouth's head from
his body. He handed it to the idiot. "Tell Vodicka this's the game I play
with treachers. Tell him I say he's a coward, a baseborn whoreson who sends
assassins after people he's too craven to face himself."
"We
better get out of here," said one of Bragi's men.
"Yeah."
He scrambled onto the Cerny.
While
they watched Sir Andvbur's men skirmish with Volstokiners who had come out to
aid their fellows, Bragi told the Queen, "You look ill. He would've killed
you."
"It's
not that. I've seen men die... The head..."
"Didn't
give me any joy either. But gruesome doings sometimes save lives."
"I
know. 1 understand. But that doesn't make me like it."
His own
stomach was in poor shape.
The
skirmishing died away. After transferring his gear to a fresh horse, Ragnarson
mounted, said, "Time for the next phase." He took a Royal standard
from a bearer, spurred downhill.''
He went
at a trot, carefully studying the ground and distant ramparts. He went to a
canter, then, at bowshot, to a gallop. Volstokiners watched in surprise as he
spurred past their earthworks, shouting insults at Vodicka. A few desultory
arrows reached for him.
One
whirred past his nose. He laughed like one of the battle-crazy berserker heroes
of his boyhood homeland. His hair and beard whipped with the speed of the
horse's passage. He hadn't felt such exhilaration in years.
He
stopped beyond bowshot and waited. Then his high spirits got the better of him.
He made a second passage, this time planting the Queen's standard on a mound
near Vodicka's gate.
"You're
mad!" the Queen cried, when he returned for a fresh mount.
"Completely insane!" But she was laughing. And there was a new, more
promising sparkle in her eyes.
"He's
got to come out now. Or admit he's a coward to his whole army."
"He'll
come in full knight's regalia," said Sir Andvbur, who had grabbed an
opportunity to put himself near the Queen. "You won't be able to handle
him..."
His
spirits still soared. "Watch me!" Despite the cold, he shed garments
till he was down to basic Trolledyngjan war gear. He hung helmet, shield, and
sword on his horse, then ran into the woods where a Guard's infantry company
lay hidden. He returned with a long pike.
"What
you got to do," he explained, "is outgut them. When they know you're
easy meat, but you stand your ground and grin, they get nervous. And make
mistakes."
He
realized he was showing off, but what he saw in the Queen's eyes made rational
behavior impossible.
He rode
to the meeting point, dismounted, planted a fresh standard, walked twenty paces
downslope, leaned on the pike.
Trumpets
winded. The encampment gate opened. A knight came forth.
This time
Ragnarson faced Vodicka. He continued leaning on the pike, motionless. The
horseman trotted back and forth, getting the feel of the earth, then rode
uphill and stopped a hundred yards away.
As
Ragnarson examined that mass of blood and steel, weighing nearly a ton and a
half, he began to doubt. The horse was as protected as its rider.
Bragi
continued leaning as if bored. He was committed.
Vodicka
wasted no time talking. He couched his lance and charged.
The
King's horse began to loom castle-huge. Bragi dropped to one knee, set his
pike, lifted his shield. Could he hold each solidly enough?
He had
made a major miscalculation. Vodicka's lance outreached his pike.
He
shifted slightly, was unable to finish before impact.
Vodicka
came in with his lancehead aimed at Ragnarson's chest, intending to blast him
off the pike and finish him with his sword.
Bragi
twisted his shield and pushed, to deflect the lance.
It ripped
through his shield, down the underside of his forearm. Its impetus bore him
over backward. But his right arm and hand remained oak-firm for the instant
needed to bring Vodicka to grief. The pike head met the horse at the juncture
of shoulder and breastplate. The screaming beast's momentum levered it into the
air.
Ragnarson's
sprawl forced Vodicka's lancehead into the earth.
Rearing
horse and levering lance separated Vodicka from his saddle. As Ragnarson
scrambled away, Vol-stokin's King landed with a horrendous clangor. Bragi was
on him instantly, swordtip at the slot in the man's visor.
"Yield!"
"Kill
me," muffled, weak.
Ragnarson
glanced toward Vodicka's encampment. No rescue mission yet. He wrestled the
helmet free. Yes, he had caught the genuine fish. He punched the King's jaw.
"Ouch!"
He kissed his knuckles, with a knife cut the straps and laces holding Vodicka's
armor. He finished barely in time to get uphill ahead of a band of would-be
rescuers.
"He's
in bad shape," Ragnarson told the Queen as he rode up. "Better get
him to a doctor. To the palace. Won't be worth a farthing dead. Somebody find
me some bandages."
While men
dragged Vodicka away, the Queen took Ragnarson's hand. "For a minute I
thought..."
"So
did I. I'll grow up one of these days." Examining his arm, he found no
major veins severed. A surgeon put a field dressing on, told him to avoid
exertion for a few days.
"Sir
Andvbur," he said, "begin the next phase. The knight's men began pushing
earthworks forward.
TWELVE: Complications and New Directions
i) Recovery and preparation
Volstokin's
army fell apart. Man by man, then by companies, Vodicka's soldiers surrendered
their weapons, and began the walk home. Within a week the encampment was
deserted—except for El Murid's advisers and a few high officers. Ragnarson
withdrew to the capital. Blackfang and the Trolledyngjans finished the job.
Pledges
of fealty flooded in, especially from the provinces wasted. From Walsoken,
Trautwein, Orth-wein, and Uhlmansiek the response was spotty. From Loncaric and
the Galmiches there was a forbidding silence. From Savernake they expected
nothing, and nothing was what they got.
Rumors
from the east had winged men soaring the cold winter nights," flitting
from castle to castle.
Kavelin
had two small industrial regions, the Sieges of Breidenbach and Fahrig.
Breidenbach served the mines of the Galmiches, Loncaric, and Savernake. The
Royal Mint was located there. To secure this, and as an experiment, Ragnarson
sent Sir Andvbur Kimberlin north—across Low Galmiche.
Militarily,
Fahrig was more important. It lay at the
heart of iron-rich Forbeck, and received ores from
Uhlmansiek and Savernake as well. It was there Kavelin's iron and steel were
made, and weapons and armor forged.
Both
Sieges were heavily Wesson. The Queen would find support there.
Forbeck
and Fahrig became Ragnarson's pet winter project. Securing them would not only
insure his weapons supply, it would split the still rebellious provinces into
two groups. The southern tier were comparatively weak.
They had
gotten numerous declarations of fealty out of Forbeck, mostly from lesser
nobles whose fortunes depended on open trade routes. The great landholders
favored the Captal's pretender.
While
Ragnarson studied, pondered, maneuvered his troops through the Siege of
Vorgreberg, made requests and recommendations, and wished he controlled some
means of communication as swift as the Captal's, the Queen put in eighteen-hour
days trying to rebuild a shattered hierarchy. There were banishments and outlawries,
and instruments of social import, each bitterly resisted in council.
Most
resisted was confirmation of Ragnarson's bargain with the aldermen of Sedlmayr.
On confirmation, Sedlmayr sent Colonels Kiriakos and Phiambolos and six hundred
skilled arbalesters to Vorgreberg, and raised levies to pacify Walsoken.
Another
edict guaranteed certain rights of free men, especially Wessons.
Even for
serfs there was a new right. One son in each family would be permitted to leave
the land for service with the Crown. For Kavelin, with its traditional class
rigidities, this was a revolutionary device for social mobility.
Though
they moaned, the Nordmen yielded little there. The chaos in the west had
separated countless serfs from their masters. Many had become robbers and
brigands. The device would bring them out of outlawry.
Men began
filtering into the Siege.
Responsibilities
went with rights. Ragnarson, slyly, injected into the decrees the concept of
every man a soldier in defense of his own. Each adult male was ordered to
obtain and learn to use a sword.
He was
surprised how easily that slipped past the Ministers. Men with swords stood a
little taller, stopped being unquestioning instruments of their lords' wills.
Two
months passed. Warnecke came into the fold. Vodicka became the dour, grimly
silent tenant of a tower shared with a manservant sent him by Sir Farace. The
Wessons of Fahrig hinted interest in a charter like Sedlmayr's. Rolf Preshka's
health deteriorated till he spent most of his time in bed. Turran and Valther
disappeared. But their hands could be seen. The winter in the lowlands was
unusually mild. In the high country it was bitter beyond memory. Sir Andvbur
occupied Breidenbach. And Bragi spent more and more time in the field, drilling
his forces in the southeastern portion of the Siege.
One
blustery morning his engineers threw a pontoon across the Spehe to the
Gudbrandsdal. He invaded Forbeck.
ii) Ghost hunting.
Mocker
huddled between buildings in Timpe, a minor city in Volstokin, cursing the
weather and his own ill fortune. He had been in the kingdom two months and had
yet to uncover a hint of Haroun's whereabouts. The warmest trail hadn't been
hot since autumn. A few guerrillas remained, but the big man had vanished.
A ragged
party of soldiers appeared, returning from Kavelin. They exchanged bitter words
with people in the streets. Mocker retreated to deeper shadows. No point giving
foul tempers'a scapegoat.
"Well,"
said a voice from the darkness, softly, "see what the hounds have
flushed."
One hand
darting beneath his robes for a dagger, Mocker looked around. He saw no one.
"Haroun?"
"Could
be."
"Self,
have been traipsing over half arse-end of world..."
"So
I've heard. What's your problem?"
Mocker
tried to explain while hunting. He saw nothing but unnaturally deep shadow.
"So
what's Bragi want?" the sourceless voice demanded. "He's doing all
right. He could make himself king."
"Hai!
Enemies thus far ground in mill of great grinder northern friend like ants in
path of anteater. But now anteater comes to narrow in road where lion
waits..."
"What're
you babbling about? El Murid? He won't attack. He's got trouble at home."
"Woe!
Know-it-all son of sand witch, spawn of mating of scorpion with open-mouthed
jackass, or maybe camel, plotting like little old lady Fates, mouth always open
and eyes always closed..."
"I
missed something. And I'm being told to shut up long enough to hear what."
"Hai!
Is not stupid after all. O stars of night, witness. Is able to add up
twos." Carefully, wasting fewer words than usual, he told what Bragi had
encountered in the Savernake Gap.
"I
should've expected something. Always there're complications. The gods
themselves contend against me." Angrily, "I defy them. The Fates, the
gods, the thrones in Shinsan. Though the world be laid in ruin and the legions
of Hell march forth from the seas, I'll return."
It was
the oath Haroun had sworn while fleeing from Hammad al Nakir long ago.
Of all
the Royal House, descendants of the Kings and Emperors of Ilkazar, only Haroun
had survived to pursue a restoration. He alone had been nimble, swift, and hard
enough to evade the arrows, blades, and poisons of El Murid's assassins, to
become, in exile, the guerrilla chieftain known as the King Without a Throne.
Mocker
decided it was time an old, nagging question got asked. "Haroun, in case
Fates serve up wicked chance with left hands, ending life of old marching
companion, what of Cause? Are no successors, hey? Leaders of Royalists, yes.
Grim old men in dark places, lying poisoned blades in hand for enemies of
Haroun. But no sons of same to pick up swords and go on pursuing elusive crown.
Bin
Yousif laughed bitterly. "Perhaps. Perhaps not. I've taken roads walked
alone, have secrets unshared. Still, if I'm gone, what do I care?
"Well,
I've hoarded a trick or two, like a miser. Guess it's time to spend them."
Mocker,
still trying to detect something in the darkness, was startled by a sudden wail
from a few feet away. "Haroun?"
The
answer was a moan of fear. The darkness faded.
Haroun
was gone. Always, in recent years, it had been that way. There was no more
closeness, no shared truth between them. Yet Haroun continued presuming on
friendships formed in younger days.
The
sounds of distress continued. Mocker pushed into the dying darkness.
He found
an old beggar barely this side of death. "Demons," the man mumbled.
"Possessed by demons."
Mocker
shuddered, frowned. Haroun had found him, but he hadn't found Haroun. From
somewhere else, anywhere, by sorcery, bin Yousif had spoken through the old
man. So. His old friend had been studying the dark arts.
With the
best of intentions, no doubt. But Haroun's character...
The
appearance of several soldiers at the street exit, drawn by the beggar's wails,
made Mocker take to his heels.
Very
dissatisfactory, he thought, his robes flying. The trip had been a waste. He
should abandon everything and return to Nepanthe.
iii) The night visitors
Operating
armies in winter, even on Kavelin's small scales, presented almost insuperable
problems. Bragi crossed the Spehe with rations for ten days. That he entered
the Gudbrandsdal was more to take advantage of game than to come at Forbeck
unexpected.
He passed
through the forest slowly, pursuing routes previously marked by the Marena
Dimura, his men scattering to hunt. Two days passed before he allowed his
patrols beyond the forest's eastern verge.
The
loyalties of the Forbeck nobility seemed proportional to distance from
Vorgreberg. They encountered resistance only beyond Fahrig. The Nordmen there
supported the Captal's pretender.
Blackfang's
Trolledyngjans, who found the winter mild, whooped from town to castle.
After
three weeks, Ragnarson passed command to Blackfang and returned to Vorgreberg.
Little
had happened in his absence. An assassin, of the Harish Cult of Hammad al
Nakir, had been caught climbing the castle wall. He had committed suicide
before he could be questioned. Three ministers had been thrown in the dungeon.
Her Majesty had coped.
He saw
her briefly before retiring. She was haggard.
Deep in
the night a daydream came true, something he had both wanted and feared.
At a
touch he suddenly sat upright in darkness. His candle was out. He grabbed for
the dagger beside it.
A hand
pushed against his chest. A woman's hand. "What?..."he rumbled.
A barely
audible "Shh!" He lay back. Fabric rustled as clothing fell. Long,
slim nakedness slid in beside him. Arms surrounded him. Small, firm breasts
pressed against his chest. Hungry lips found his...
Next
morning he was still unsure it hadn't been a dream. There was no evidence save
his own satiation. And the Queen seemed unchanged.
Had it
been someone else? Her maidservant, Maighen, whose flirting eyes had long made
her willingness evident? But Maighen was a plumpish Wesson with breasts like
pillows.
Each
night the mystery compounded itself, though she came earlier and earlier and
stayed longer and longer.
The day
Haaken sent word of the surrender of the last rebels in Forbeck, Gjerdrum
asked, "What're you doing nights, anyway?"
Ragnarson
flashed a guilty look. "A lot of worrying. How do you beat sorcery without
sorcery?"
Gjerdrum
shrugged.
All
questions had their answers. Sometimes they weren't pleasant; sometimes the
circumstances of resolution were distressing.
The
latter was the case the night Bragi unraveled the mystery of his lover's
identity.
The first
scream barely penetrated his passion. The second, cut off, grabbed like the
hand of a clawed demon.
It had
come from the Queen's chambers.
He
grabbed his weapons and, naked, charged up the corridor.
The
guards before the Queen's door lay in a heap. Blood trickled over the edge of
the balcony to the floor below.
Ragnarson
hit the door, broke the lock, charged through. He roared into the Royal
bedchamber in time to seize a man trying to force himself through a window. He
clapped the man's temple, knocked him out.
Ragnarson
turned to the Queen's bed. Maighen. And over her now, clenched fist at her
mouth, the Queen herself, naked. A dagger protruded from Maighen's throat.
Despite
the situation, his eyes roamed a body he had known only by touch. She reddened.
"Get
something on," he ordered. He grabbed a blanket, tied it around his waist,
returned to Maighen.
There was
no hope.
Gjerdrum
and three guardsmen entered.
"Get
those doors closed," Ragnarson ordered. "Don't let anyone in. Or out.
You men. Watch that fellow over there. Gjerdrum, get the city gates closed. No
one in or out till 1 give the word."
It
looked, he thought, as if Maighen had been sleeping in the Queen's bed and the
assassin had tried to smother her. She had fought free, screamed, and had taken
a panicky dagger.
Turning
again, he found Gjerdrum still there. "I thought I told you... Wait!
Gjerdrum, don't let it out who died. Let them think it was Her Highness. Let's
see who tries to profit. But do mention that we've caught the killer."
Gjerdrum
frowned, nodded, departed.
"You
men," Ragnarson told the guardsmen, "are going to be out of
circulation a while. I don't want you talking to anyone. Understand?"
Nods. "All right. You, watch the door. No one gets in. No one."
Turning to the Queen, softly, "Slip back to my quarters. Stay out of
sight."
"What
do you mean?"
"You
know perfectly well. There's a passage you use, else those two in the corridor
would've spread tales. Be a good girl and scoot."
The
assassin came round. He was a Wesson barely old enough to sport a beard. An
amateur who had panicked, and who was now eager to cooperate.
But he
didn't know who had hired him, though he provided a weak description of the
interlocuter.
Bragi
promised him that, if he helped trap his principal, he would be allowed to go
into exile.
The youth
knew but one thing for certain. He had been hired by Nordmen.
Ragnarson
jumped to a conclusion. "If they know we've got you, they'll try to kill
you..."
"Bait?"
"Exactly."
"But..."
"Your
alternative is a date with the headsman."
iv) The worms within
There
were four men in the cell with the assassin. Two were genuine prisoners. One
was a spy who had been set to watch them. The last was Rolf Preshka.
Rumors of
the Queen's murder had run like hares before hounds, threatening to undo all
that had been won. Heads leaned together, plotting...
Virtually
no one would accept the succession of Crown Prince Gaia-Lange, who had been
removed to safety with his grandfather in Sacuescu.
Ragnarson
expected the assassin's employers to move swiftly. He wasn't disappointed. Just
before dawn three men stole to the cell where Rolf and the youth lay. One was the night
turnkey. A soldier and a Nordmen accompanied him.
Rolf
controlled a cough as a key squeaked in the lock. He didn't think they could be
handled. They were healthy, armed, and Bragi wanted them alive.
But Bragi
was nearby. Using information he had bullied from the Queen, he had brought the
guardsmen from her chambers to the turnkey's office by secret ways. He had
watched the soldier and Nordmen come to the turnkey, had seen gold change
hands. Now, hearing the distance-muted rattle of keys, he led the guardsmen
through a hidden door.
Weapons
clashed in the gloom below. Bragi signed two men thither, left the third to
hold the dungeon door.
Reaching
the cell, he thundered, "Give it up, you."
Preshka
and the boy had backed into a corner. The spy and prisoners had been slain.
The
Nordmen attacked Rolf ferociously. The turnkey threw up his hands. The soldier,
for a second, seemed torn. Then he too dropped his weapon. Bragi hurled him and
the turnkey outside.
He, Rolf,
and the youth subdued the Nordmen, though the man tried to get himself killed.
"To
the stairs," Ragnarson growled. Sounds of fighting came from the turnkey's
office. The would-be killers had left a rearguard of their own, beyond the
dungeon door.
The
guardsmen returned with another soldier. Both captives, Ragnarson noted, were
from companies recently recruited.
He dumped
the soldiers and turnkey in with the corpses. The Nordmen and assassin,
blindfolded and with hands bound, he took up the secret ways to his apartment.
"Ah,
Sir Hendren of Sokolic," the Queen said with false sweetness, as Bragi
removed his blindfold. "So you wanted me dead. And I thought you a loyal
knight." She slapped him viciously. "I never saw so many stab-in-the-back
cowards. Ravelin's infested."
The man
went pale. He saw his death before him, but still stood tall and silent.
"Yes,
I'm alive. But you might not be long. Unless you tell me who had you hire the
boy."
Sir
Hendren said nothing.
"Then
we'll do it the hard way." Bragi shoved the Nordmen into a chair, began
binding his legs.
"What?..."
the Queen began.
"Castrate
him."
"But..."
"If
you don't want to stay..."
"I
was going to say he's Lord Lindwedel's man."
"You're
sure?"
"As
stoutly as Eanred was the Krief's."
"Is
that true?" he asked Sir Hendren.
The
knight glowered.
"Be
back in a few minutes." Bragi gave the Queen a dagger. "Use it if you
have to."
He went
to Lindwedel's apartment. Circumstantially, he found the Queen's allegations
confirmed.
Lindwedel,
who rose before noon only in the gravest times, was awake, dressed, and in
conference.
After
amenities, Lindwedel asked, "What can I do for you, Marshal?"
It took
some tall lying, worthy of Mocker at his most imaginative, but he convinced the
plotters that they should come to his apartment. He hinted that there were
secrets he had uncovered during his tenure, and that he wanted to discuss
bringing his troops round to their cause.
The
Queen, he discovered, had anticipated him. She and the assassin had gone into
hiding. Sir Hendren had been gagged, moved against the wall, and covered with a
sheet like a piece of useless furniture. "Ah," Bragi said, pleased.
The Ministers glanced at him, puzzled. He stood beside the door while they
filed in.
The Queen
stepped from hiding. Ragnarson chuckled as sudden pallor hit Nordmen faces.
"Greetings,
my lords," she said. "We're pleased you could attend us." She
made a sign. The assassin crossed to Sir Hendren, removed the sheet.
Lindwedel
plunged toward the door. "Got you again," said Bragi.
"Lindy,
Lindy," said the Queen. "Why'd you have to have it all?"
Drawing
himself up stiffly, trying to maintain his dignity, Lindwedel refused to reply.
Not so
some of his co-conspirators. They babbled the tiniest details of the plot.
They were
still babbling when they were hauled before a tribunal. They named more and
more names, exposing a vast conspiracy.
The
conspirators, silent or talkative, next noon, wore puzzled expressions as the
headsman's ax fell. They didn't understand.
Ragnarson,
for symbolism, had chosen a Wesson who abjured the black hood. The lesson
wasn't wasted.
There was
a new order. The masks were off and the despised Wessons were the real power
supporting the Crown.
He
expected the nocturnal visits to cease. And for three nights they did. But on
the fourth she returned. She woke him, and this time didn't extinguish the
candle.
THIRTEEN: In Their Wickedness They Are Blind, in Their
Folly They Persist
i) He watches from darkness
Once
again the winged man came to Castle Krief, this time gliding noiselessly
through a moonless, overcast night. He deeply feared that the men would be
waiting for him, their cold steel ready to free his soul, but the only soldier
he saw was asleep at his post on the wall. He drifted into an open window
unnoticed.
Heart
hammering, crystal dagger half-drawn, he stole through darkened corridors. His
mission was more daring and dangerous than either previous. This time he truly
tempted the Fates.
Twice he
had to use the tiny wand the Master's lady had given him. He need only point it
and squeeze and a fine violet line would touch his target. The sentry would
fall asleep.
The first
time he almost fainted. When he stepped in front of the man, he found the soldier's
eyes still open. But unseeing. Shaking and sighing, Shoptaw made his way to his
goal.
It was
tricky, finding the room where the Krief held his secret audiences. The Master
had visited Castle Krief but once, and that the day before Shoptaw's last visit.
Their knowledge
of the castle's interior came from men the Master had recruited to help Kiki
claim her inheritance. None had been intimates of the King. They knew of the
room's existence, but not its location.
So
Shoptaw had to trust his own judgment. He was pleased that the Master had such
faith in him, but feared that faith might be misplaced. He knew he wasn't as
intelligent as the real men... As always, he persevered, for his friend Kiki,
for the Master. He found a plain small room down a narrow passage from an
ornate large one. It felt right.
He
searched the room carefully, preternaturally sensitive fingertips probing for
the mechanisms hidden in the walls. It took three hours to find the hidden
doorway. With a half-prayer that no one would use it soon, he slipped through.
The
passage behind had been designed to his purpose. It ran round three sides of
the chamber, had tiny holes for hearing and seeing. Long-undisturbed dust lay
deep within, a promising sign. He shed the small pack he had been able to
bring, prepared for a long stay.
He had
chosen correctly. But for a long time he learned nothing that would be of
interest to the Master.
Then came
the break he had been awaiting. He knew it the moment the chamber door opened,
alerting him, and he reached a peephole in time to see the lean dark man follow
the King in. He didn't recognize the man. He was new, a foreigner.
The dark
man spoke directly. "Her Majesty will need supporters without a political
stake."
"A
point you made in your letter."
"None
of your Nordmen fit."
"I
have the King's Own and the guard. Their loyalties are beyond question."
"Perhaps.
But we're speaking of a time when you won't be here to guide those
loyalties."
The King,
thought Shoptaw, was a tired old man. The wasting sickness was devouring him.
He didn't have long to live. His face often revealed some internal pain.
"Don't
overstep good taste, sir."
"You've
had time to investigate. You've been stalling for it. You know tact isn't my strong
point."
"No.
Yet the reports were, in the balance, favorable." The dark man smiled a
thin smile that made Shoptaw think of hungry foxes.
"Granted,
I need someone. Granted, your proposal sounds good. Still, I wonder. Your specialty's
guerrilla warfare. How would Fiana use you? You couldn't prevent the barons
from taking Vorgreberg. Then you'd be unemployed... There is, too, the question
of what you hope to gain personally."
"Good.
You did your homework. I don't mean to conduct the Queen's defense myself. For
that I have in mind a talented gentleman in retirement in Itaskia. He'd conduct
the conventional campaign. Most of the arrangements have been made. When we
conclude a contract, a regiment will begin gathering."
"Yes,
no doubt. You've been ducking in and out of Kavelin for years. Spent a lot of
time with the Marena Dimura, I hear. Which leads back to your interest in the
matter."
"I
could lie to you. I could say it's profit. But you'd know I was lying.
"No
matter what you do, no matter how well you prepare, there's going to be a
period of adjustment after you pass on. Neither Gaia-Lange nor Fiana is
acceptable to your nobility. And you have greedy neighbors. They're watching
your health now. They'll complicate and prolong it. Itaskia and El Murid will
be watching them, to guard their own interests...
"My
intention is to hit my old enemy while he's distracted."
The Krief
chuckled. "Ah. You're devious."
The dark
man shrugged. "One sharpens the weapon at hand."
"Indeed.
Indeed. Your friend. Do I know him?"
"Unlikely.
He's not one of your glory chasers. He's preferred to keep his operations
small. But he's -as competent as Sir Tury Hawkwind. And has a good relationship
with such as Count Visigodred and Zindah-jira, of whom, I'm sure, you have
heard."
"Ah?
Any man might find such friends useful. His name?"
"Ragnarson,
Bragi Ragnarson. Guild Colonel. Though he operates independent of High
Crag."
"Not
the Ragnarson who was in Altea during the wars?"
"The
same. He knocked the point off the spear El Murid ran up the north slope of the
Kapenrungs."
"I
remember. A lucky victory. It allowed Raithel time to block the thrust. Yes.
This might be what I need..."
The
winged man had heard enough. For the first time in his vigil he became
impatient. He had to fly, to warn the Master.
For he
had heard the name Bragi Ragnarson before. Ragnarson was one of the men who had
destroyed the father of the Master's lady. He must be terrible indeed.
ii) The wicked persist in their wickedness, and know no joy
"Papa
Drake," said Carolan, whispering, "why's Aunt Mist always so
sad?"
The old
man glanced across his library. Mist stood staring out a westward-facing
window, deep in her own thoughts. "She lost something, darling."
"Here?
Is that why she's here so much now?"
"You
might say. Someone she loved very much... Well..." He dithered, then
decided he might as well tell her the whole story.
When he
finished, Carolan went over, took Mist's hand. "I'm sorry. Maybe
someday..."
Mist
frowned, glanced at the Captal, then flashed a bright smile. She hugged the
child. "You're priceless."
Through
the window, over Mist's shoulder, Carolan saw something hurtling across the
sky. "Shoptaw! Papa Drake, Shoptaw's coming. Can I go?..."
"You
just wait, young lady. Business first. But you can tell Burla."
As she
ran out, Mist said, "He's in an awful hurry. Must be bad news."
Within
the half-hour they had heard it all.
"Not
to deprecate the man's ability," said Mist, as the Captal began fussing,
"but he can be neutralized. I can ask Visigodred not to get involved, and
bully Zindahjira into minding his own business. And if we slip the word to El
Murid, he'll take care of this Ragnarson for us."
"And
if that fails?" The Captal remembered that this Ragnarson had been
associated with Varthlokkur. He was more frightened of that man than he had
been of Mist's father.
"We'll
handle it ourselves. But why worry? Unless the economic picture changes and the
politics of High Crag shift, he won't gather much of an army. And if he does,
he'll find himself facing my troops, assuming he survives the rebels."
"So
many difficulties already..."
"We
won't win any victories sitting here."
To the
Captal it seemed but moments till their first failure. Nothing they did
prevented Ragnarson from leaving Itaskia. Try as he might, he couldn't shake
his pessimism.
"I
feel Death's hot breath on the back of my neck," he once confided to
Burla.
One day
Mist announced, "He's in Ruderin. He knows the King's dead. I'll need your
help setting a trap."
The
Captal, with his creatures, transferred to a small fortress in Shinsan, which,
with the help of the Tervola, was projected into Ruderin.
There were
complications. Always there were complications.
The whole
thing collapsed. And the Captal lost dozens of his oldest friends.
He also
suffered a crisis of conscience.
Back in
his own library, to Mist, he said, "Don't ever ask me to do anything like
that again. If I can't kill more cleanly than that..."
Mist
ignored him. She had her own problems. The Tervola were growing cooler and
cooler. Her followers still hadn't taken care of O Shing. And Valther... He had
disappeared. He had been gone from Hellin Daimiel for months.
But that
worry she kept secret. Neither the Tervola nor the Captal would understand...
She spent
more and more time at Maisak, delegating more and more authority to her
retainers.
iii) The spears of dread pursue them...
Months
passed. The excitement of the succession reached a feverish pitch. The Captal
did some quiet campaigning. At first he was received coolly, even with mockery,
but the swift parade of rebel disasters scrubbed the disdainful smiles from
Nordmen faces. A few began mustering at Maisak.
"There're
so few of them," said Carolan.
"They
don't know you yet," the Captal replied. "Besides, a lot of them want
to be King too."
"The
man that's coming... He scares you, doesn't he?" There was no longer any
doubt that Ragnarson's swift march was aimed at Maisak. "Is he a bad
man?"
"I
suppose not. No more than the rest of us. Maybe less. He's on the law's side.
We're the bad ones from the Crown's viewpoint."
"Aunt
Mist's scared too. She says he's too smart. And knows too many people."
Shifting subject suddenly, "What's she like?"
"Who?"
"My
mother. The Queen."
The
Captal had supposed she knew. Burla and Shoptaw could deny her nothing. But
this was the first time she had brought it up.
"I
don't know. I've never met her. Never even seen her. You probably know more
than I do."
"Nobody
knows very much." She shook her head, tossing golden curls, almost lost
the small iron diadem she wore, symbolic of Kavelin's Iron Crown, a
legend-haunted treasure tkat never left the Royal vaults in Vorgreberg.
"She's shy, I guess. They say nobody sees her much. She must be lonely."
The
Captal hadn't thought of that. Hadn't thought of Fiana as a person at all.
"Yes. Probably. Makes you wonder why she stays on. Practically no one
wants her..."
Shoptaw
appeared. "Master, hairy men very close. In Baxendala now. Traveling fast.
Here soon. Maybe two, three day." Though the Trolledyngjans were in the
minority in Ragnarson's forces, they had so impressed the winged man that he
thought of all enemies as hairy men.
"How
many?"
"Many,
many. Twice times us, maybe."
"Not
good. Shoptaw, that's not good." He thought of the caves, whose mouths he
had for years been trying to locate and seal. Ragnarson had a knack for
discovering his enemies' weak points. He would know about the caves.
"Shoptaw,
old friend, you know what this means?"
"War
here." The winged man shuddered. "We fight. Win again. As
always."
Carolan
hadn't missed their uncertainty. "You'd better tell Aunt Mist."
"Uhn."
The Captal didn't like it, though. She would want to bring in her own people.
There were more Shinsaners in Maisak now than he liked, a half-dozen grimly
silent veterans who were training his troops and keeping their eyes on him.
iv)... And the thing they fear comes upon them
The first
troops came through next day, immediately behind Mist and several masked
Tervola. She had said she was bringing six hundred. The stream seemed endless
to a man who had often heard what terrible soldiers they were. Yet she was
honest. He counted exactly six hundred, most of whom left the fortress
immediately. Mist was considerate of his sensibilities.
And
before long Ragnarson encountered the Captal's little ambushers.
The
Captal followed the reports in quiet sorrow, standing rod-stiff in the darkness
atop Maisak's wall. It was murder, pure and simple. The little people couldn't
cope with the hairy men. He could console himself only
' been with the knowledge
that none of them
had conscripted. They had asked for weapons.
There was
a fierce, bloodthirsty determination in the enemy's approach that startled and
frightened him. It didn't seem characteristic of the Ragnarson who had swept
the lowlands. Then he learned what had been done to Ragnarson's scouts.
He was
enraged. His first impulse was to confront Mist and her generals... But no,
with their power they would simply push him aside and take over. He did order
his small friends to cease disputing the pass. In a small way, in lessened
readiness and increased casualties, Shinsan would pay for its barbarity.
Ragnarson
didn't come whooping in as expected, as past performance suggested he would.
Many of
the Captal's friends, and a startling number of Mist's troops, died before the
Tervola felt ready to commit Carolan's men.
Mist
visited his station on the wall, from which he watched Shinsaners being
harassed by bowmen. "We're ready." She had sensed his new coldness
and was curious. He had already told her he wouldn't discuss it till the
fighting ended.
"You're
positive she'll be safe?"
"Drake,
Drake, I love her too. I wouldn't let her go if there was a ghost of a chance
she'd get hurt."
"I
know. I worry like a grandmother. But I can't help feeling this man's more
dangerous than you think. He knew what he was up against when he came here.
Why'd he keep coming?"
"I
don't know, Drake. Maybe he's not as smart as you think."
"Maybe.
If Carolan gets hurt..."
Mist
wheeled and'went below. Soon she and Carolan, leading Kaveliner recruits,
departed Maisak's narrow gate.
When the
swift-sped arrows dropped from the darkness, he said only, "I knew it. I
knew it," and plunged down steps to ground level.
In
moments he was beside Carolan. "Baby, baby, are you all right?"
Subsequent
events seemed anti-climactic. He bickered with Mist, dispiritedly.
"Sometimes,
Drake," she once murmured, "I wish I could give it all up."
iv) What does a man profit?
Winter
came early, and with a vengeance. The Captal had never seen its like. In normal
times it would have been cause for distress. But there were no late caravans to
be shepherded through the Gap. Hardly a traveler had crossed all summer.
The
Captal welcomed the weather. He would have no trouble with Ragnarson before
spring.
Mist
damned it. She foresaw them facing a united Ravelin next summer.
The
Captal kept his winged creatures watching the lowlands. Ragnarson seemed unable
to avoid success— yet each redounded to the Captal's benefit. Ever more Nordmen
turned to his standard. Because of his power, he thought. Because he was the
one enemy Ragnarson hadn't been able to reduce.
He
realized these new allies would abandon him the instant the loyalists
collapsed, but that was a problem he could solve in its time. For the"
present he had to concentrate on old enemies.
Though
his couriers brought news consisting entirely of lists of towns and castles and
provinces lost, he began to hope. In the free provinces several hitherto
uncommitted Nordmen were turning rebel for each turning loyalist.
The
edicts flowing from Vorgreberg had changed the root nature of the struggle. The
issue, now, was a power struggle between Crown and nobility, one which would
preserve or sweep away many ancient prerogatives. And it had become a class
war. The underclasses, bought by Crown perfidy, strove to wrest privilege from
their betters.
The Captal
contacted Baron Thake
Berlich in
Loncaric,
a recidivist who had been captured by Ragnarson in the Gap and paroled by
Fiana. The man's response had been to raise stronger forces for the rematch. He
had been one of the Krief's commanders during the wars. He was the logical man
to bring Ragnarson to heel. But he was a conservative of a stripe judged
bizarre even by his own class.
Through
Berlich, using the Baron's interlocutors— whom he kept in careful ignorance of
the messages they bore—he reached Sir Andvbur Kimberlin of Karadja, in
Breidenbach. Kimberlin had publicly voiced displeasure with the Queen's tepid
social reforms. The Captal invited the knight to help him build a new society,
hinting that while he controlled Carolan, he wasn't long for this world and was
looking for someone who understood, who could carry on after he was gone.
As winter
lugubriously progressed toward a spring that was no spring at all in the Gap,
the Captal grew less and less pessimistic. The rebel coalition, spanning the
extremes of political dissatisfaction and opportunism, waxed strong, reaching
into Vorgreberg itself.
That fell
apart.
"Stupid,
greedy pigs!" the old man grumbled for days. "We had it in our hands.
But they had to try cutting us out." Even Carolan stayed out of his way.
He
decided there was no choice but to bring in eastern troops, to give the rebels
backbone. And, to use a little wizardry.
News of
the sudden shift at High Crag (where the ruling junta had for a decade
discouraged mercenary involvement in actual warmaking), that had led to an
offer of three veteran regiments to the Crown, again pushed the Captal toward
despair. It was contagious. Mist became a sad, resigned woman. She returned to
Shinsan to prepare a legion for transfer to Maisak when the snows melted.
The
Captal, self-involved, overlooked her mood. Burla, Shoptaw, and Carolan
understood Mist's unhap-piness. The man she had lost, and his brother, had
reappeared. In Ravelin. Working the other side again.
v) Glitter of an enemy spear
Three men
crouched beneath an ice overhang and, when not cursing the temperature,
considered the fortress west of them.
"It'll
work," promised the one with a single eye. "They can't sense
us."
"The
spells. The spells," another grumbled. "If that Shinsaner bitch
wasn't in there, I'd believe in them."
"Just
think about the gold, Brad," said the third. "More than... More than
you've ever dreamed."
"I
believe in that less than Haroun's spells. Maybe this's his way of getting rid
of us. We know too much."
"A
possibility," Derran admitted. "And I haven't overlooked it."
"If
there's trouble, it'll come at payoff time," Kerth said.
"Uhm."
"It's
dark enough," said Brad.
"Give
it a few more minutes," said Derran. "Let 'em start thinking about
bedtime. Some of those things can see like cats." For the hundredth time
he patted his purse. Inside, carefully protected, lay a small bundle of plans
of Maisak's interior, obtained by bin Yousif from a winged man taken several
months earlier.
"You're
sure there'll be no sentries?" Brad asked.
Derran
concealed his exasperation. "No. Why the hell would they be watching for
someone in this?" He gestured at deep snow now invisible in darkness:
"Probably someone at the gate, but that's all that's logical." He
checked the night, the few lights visible in the fortress. "Hell, you're
right, Brad. Let's go."
It took a
half-hour to slog the short distance to the castle wall, then just minutes to
set a grapnel and climb up. Five minutes later they had finished the two
owl-faced creatures at the gate and prepared it for their retreat. If all went
right, they would be well on their way before their visit caused an alarm.
Maisak
was thick with smells and smokes, but in the outer works, in the winter chill,
they encountered no other evidence of occupation.
"Lot
of men here," Kerth observed. "Wonder how they keep them fed?"
"Probably
with transfers from Shinsan," Derran replied. "That door there, with
the brass hinges. That look like the one we want?"
"Fits
the description."
"Okay.
Brad, you open. Kerth, cover." He went in low and fast so Kerth could
throw over him, but the precaution proved unnecessary. The corridor was empty.
"All
right," said Derran, "let's see. Commissary down that way. Third room
this way."
In that
room they found a half-dozen odd little people sleeping. "Look like
rabbits," Brad said, after they had been dispatched.
"Place's
supposed to be full of weirds," Derran replied. "Kerth, find the
panel. We'll clean up." Soon they were climbing a dusty circular stair in
complete darkness.
The stair
ended in a landing. There was a wall with peepholes. Beyond the wall lay an
empty, poorly lighted corridor.
"Brad,
you watch." Derran felt for the mechanism that would allow access to the
corridor. A small panel scraped aside. They awaited a reaction. Brad hastily
assembled a crossbow.
"Go."
Derran tapped Kerth's shoulder.
Daggers
in hand, the man rushed the one door opening off the corridor. He paused beside
it. Closed, he signaled. Derran joined him, pointed to the regular stair. Kerth
checked it, signaled it was clear. Derran dropped to his stomach and peered beneath
the door with his good eye. From his bundle of plans he took one of the
Captal's library, indicated the position of each person in the room.
A final
problem. Was the door locked? Barred? Haroun's captive had claimed there were
no locked doors in Maisak, only hidden ones.
Derran
stood, placed his back to the door, took its handle in his left hand, held his
sword vertically in his right. Kerth readied his daggers, nodded.
Explosion.
Derran slammed the door open. As his
momentum carried him out of the way, one of Kerth's
weapons took wing. Its pommel smacked the Shinsaner woman between the eyes.
Derran
didn't pause to appreciate the throw. It was what he had expected. Kerth had
spent countless hours practicing.
The woman
was the key. If she weren't silenced, all was lost.
In
passing he crossed blades with the old man, pushed through his guard, left him
clutching his wound in amazement. He grabbed the woman, shoved a hand into her
mouth, with his free hand tossed Kerth his dagger. Kerth took it on the fly and
turned to two weird creatures who had thrown themselves in front of the little
girl...
A wall
opened up and men with swords stepped in. Ragnarson's men.
FOURTEEN: The Roads to Baxendala
i) In by the back door
Though
April was near, the snow remained deep and moist. The two men fought it gamely,
but were compelled to take frequent rests.
"Must
be getting old," Turran grumbled, glancing up the long, steep slope yet to
be climbed.
Valther
said nothing, just made sure moisture hadn't reached his sword. He seldom spoke
even now.
"Almost
there," Turran said. "That bluff up there ... That's the one that
looked like a man's face." The last time they had been in the Gap it had
been summer and they had been hurrying to their fates in Escalon. Nothing
looked familiar now.
Valther
stared uphill, remaining statue-still till a bitter gust reached him.
"Better camp," he muttered.
"Uhm."
Turran had spotted a likely overhang. It would yield relief from the wind while
they hunted a usable cave. Though those were reportedly numerous, they had
become harder to find near Maisak.
"Think
they've spotted us yet?" Turran asked after they made the overhang.
Valther
shrugged. He didn't care. He would feel nothing till they had come face to face
with Mist.
"That
looks like one," said Turran, indicating a spot of darkness up the north
slope. "Let's go."
Valther
hoisted his pack and started off.
They had
little firewood left. Turran used the minimum to heat their supper, then
extinguished the blaze. They would wrap in their blankets and crowd one another
for warmth. The mouth of the cave was small and inconveniently located anyway.
The smoke didn't want to leave.
During
the night Turran shivered so hard that when he rose he had cramps.
Valther
didn't notice the chill.
For
breakfast they had jerky warmed by their body heats, washed down with snow
melted the same way.
Afterward,
Valther said, "Time to begin."
"Is
she here?" Turran asked.
Valther's
eyes glazed. For a moment he stared into distances unseen, then shrugged.
"I don't know. The aura's there, but not strong."
Turran
was surprised his brother showed that much spirit. He seemed genuinely eager
for the coming confrontation.
Turran
was not. He saw no way they could best the mistress of Shinsan. Surprise was a
tool that could be used against anyone, but how did one surprise a power so
perceptive it could detect an enemy's heartbeat a hundred miles away?
But the
attempt had to be made. Even in full expectation of death. It was a matter of
conscience. They had betrayed those who had trusted them. Just trying would
help even the balance.
"Ready?"
Valther
nodded.
From his
purse Turran took a small jewel the Monitor had given him. He set it on the
cave floor. They joined hands, stared into the talisman. Turran chanted in
liturgical Escalonian, of which he understood not a word.
In a
moment he felt little monkey-tugs at the fringes of his soul. There was a
sudden, painless wrench, as of roots pulling away, then his awareness floated
free.
The
sensing was nothing like that of the body. He did not "see" objects, yet knew
the location and shape and function of everything about him.
Valther
hadn't shed his clay. He was too distracted by obsessions that Turran could now
trace. Valther lay trapped in a sort of in-between, and would remain there till
Turran freed him or pulled him back to the mundane plane.
Just as
well, Turran reflected. Valther might have gone haring direct to Maisak, to see
Mist, and so have given them away.
There was
no sense of time on that level. Turran had to concentrate to make events follow
one another in temporal parade. He saw why the Monitor had told him not to use
the stone unless he had to. He could get lost on this side, and forget his
body, which would perish of neglect.
This was
how most ghosts had come into being, the Monitor had told him.
While
Turran had had no training in this sorcery, the wizardries of his family had
taught him discipline. He began his task.
He
floated the slopes between their hiding place and the bluff which masked
Maisak. He felt no cold, nor any pressure from the wind.
He
discovered he could sense not only the realities obvious to corporeal senses,
he could look around, beneath, and within things, and it was with this faculty
that he searched for entrances to the caverns honeycombing the mountains. Many
came clear. Most had been sealed. Those that had not, he probed deeply. He
found the one he was hunting.
Just in
time. His attachment to his body was attenuating. His will and concentration
were suffering moments of vagary.'
As he
reentered his body, he learned another danger of the magic.
Feeling
returned. All the aches and pains of a hard march, more intense for having gone
unfelt for a time. And his senses suddenly seemed severely limited. What a
temptation there was to withdraw...
He
reached out and brought his brother back.
Turran's
eyes opened. Their hands parted.
Valther
had less trouble recovering. "Did you find it?" he asked.
Turran
nodded. "I don't want to try that again."
"Bad?"
"Just
the coming back."
"Let's
go." Valther was ebullient.
Turran
rose stiffly, got his gear together. "We'll need the torches. It's
long..."
Valther
shrugged, drew his sword, ran his thumb along its edge. He didn't care about
the in-betweens, just the destination.
"What
I wouldn't give for a bath," Turran grumbled as he hoisted his pack.
"I'll lead."
It was
snowing again. That was their fault. The past several months they had used
their weather magic to confine winter's worst to the high country.
The cave
mouth was a half-mile from their hiding place, naturally but cunningly hidden.
He had a hard time locating it. It had to be dug out. It was barely large
enough to accept a man's body. He sent Valther in, pushed their packs through,
slithered in himself.
"I've
got a feeling," he told Valther as they prepared the torches, "that
we'd better hurry. My memory's getting hazy."
But speed
was impossible. The subterranean journey was long and tortuous and in places
they had to dig to enlarge passages for crawling. Once they climbed twenty feet
up a vertical face. Another time they had to cross a pit whose Stygian deeps
concealed a bottom unguessably far below. At a point where several caverns
intersected they found skeletons still arrayed in war gear of Hammad al Nakir.
Though they pushed hard, they couldn't make the journey in one day. They paused
for sleep, then continued.
They knew
they were close when they reached caverns where the walls had been regularized
by tools. Those would be passages worked during the wars, when the Captal's
fortress had had to have space for thousands of soldiers.
Then they
came on a large "chamber occupied by Kaveliners who supported the Captal's
pretender. Those who were awake were bored. Their conversation orbited round
women and a desire to be elsewhere. Nobody challenged the brothers as they
passed through.
"That
was the worst," Turran said afterward. "Now we take a side tunnel to
the Captal's laboratories and get into his private ways."
Valther
nodded, caressed the hilt of his sword.
It was
strange, Turran thought, that their coming hadn't been sensed or forseen. But,
then, their weak plan had been predicated on inattention by the enemy.
In the
laboratories, in a dark and misty chamber they recognized as one where
transfers were made, they encountered trouble.
It came
in the form of an owl-faced creature guarding the transfer pentagrams. He was
asleep when they spotted him, but wakened as they tried slipping past. They had
to silence him.
"Have
to hurry now," Turran said. The thing's disappearance would raise an
alarm.
Because
they followed secret stairs they reached the Captal's chambers before they
encountered second trouble. And this came as a total surprise.
They
pushed through a secret panel into a room full of murder. It had been a library
or study, but now it resembled a paper-maker's dump. Against one wall an
evil-faced, one-eyed man, unarmed, struggled with a woman. He had the heel of
one hand jammed firmly into her mouth.
An old
man lay unconscious and bleeding on the floor. Now, with a pair of long
daggers, a second killer stalked two weird creatures guarding a child. One
creature was a frail winged thing defending himself with a blazing crystal
dagger, the other an apelike dwarf wielding a short, weighted club.
All eyes
turned to the brothers. The failure of hope in the winged man and ape-thing
spurred Kerth. One of his blades shattered the crystal dagger while the other
turned the dwarf's club. Then the first arced over into the dwarf's throat. He
went down with a squeal.
"Burla!"
the child screeched, falling on him. "No. Don't die."
Workmanlike,
Kerth wheeled and dispatched the winged man.
When
Kerth wheeled on the child, Valther said, "No." He said it flatly,
without the least apparent emotion. The assassin froze.
Kerth and
Derran exchanged glances. Kerth shrugged, stepped away from the girl.
Sudden as
lightning, a dagger was in the air, hurtling toward Valther. The man got his
sword up in time to deflect it. It had been a gut-throw.
And a
feint. The second dagger followed by two yards, bit deep into Valther's right
shoulder. Turran jabbed with his own blade, missed the block.
There was
a crack from Derran's direction. Mist sagged in semi-consciousness. The One-Eye
blew on his knuckles.
Turran
charged Kerth, who had already armed himself with the Captal's weapon...
The
universe turned red.
Mist
forced herself up on her hands, stared through an open window. In the starkest
terror Turran had ever witnessed, she croaked, "O Shing. He's raised the
Gosik of Aubochon!"
None knew
the name, but each knew Mist. Their conflict ceased. In moments all crowded the
window, staring up at a pillar of red horror.
"The
portal!" Mist cried. "He'll try the portal while we're distracted.
We've got to destroy it."
Too late.
The clack of armor echoed up the same stair Turran and Valther had used.
ii) Approaching storm
March
sagged toward April. Spring came to the lowlands. The days of reckoning drew
rapidly closer. Ragnarson grew ever more dour and pessimistic. Things were going too
well. The censuses were in. Crops had suffered less than anticipated. In areas
where there had been little fighting there had been surpluses. Only the
Nordmen, it seemed, were suffering.
Volstokin
hadn't been as lucky. Ambassadors from the Queen Mother were pleading credit
and grain in both Kavelin and Altea.
Favorable
weather permitted early plowing. This, to Ragnarson's delight, meant more men
for summer service. Hedging against the chance they would be in the field at
harvest, the Queen was buying grain futures in Altea, a traditional exporter.
The
winter had caused changes at every level. Kavelin had shaken her lice out. As
the kingdom settled down and vast properties changed hands, the citizens looked
forward to a prosperous future. Because good fortune attended the Queen's
supporters, her strength waxed. Feelers drifted in from provinces still in
rebellion.
With the
exception of Ragnarson and his aides, no one seemed worried about the summer.
Bragi
never eased the pressure on the rebels. After Forbeck and Fahrig, he launched
expeditions into Orthwein and Uhlmansiek, using the campaigns to temper his
growing army. He suffered few setbacks. Each victory made the next easier.
Anticipating
fat looting in the Galmiches and Lon-caric, squads, companies, and battalions
poured into the capital. From the Guild-Masters in their fortress-aerie, High
Crag, on the seacoast north of Dunno Scuttari, came congratulations, word that
Ragnarson had received nominatory votes for promotion to Guild General, and an
offer of three regiments on partial advance against a percentage of booty...
On Royal
instructions Ragnarson accepted the mercenary regiments. He dreaded leading so
many men. What would happen when they learned the real nature of the enemy?
Tents
dotted the roadsides and woods of the Siege. Long wagon trains bearing supplies
rumbled toward the city. Dust raised by moving soldiery hung like a vaporous river over the
caravan route. Ragnarson was awed by their numbers, almost as many as Kavelin
had raised during the El Murid Wars. His original mercenary command now seemed
an amusingly small force. But it still formed the core of his army.
The more
he thought about controlling so many men, the more nervous he became.
Nights
the worries slid away in the magic of the Queen's arms. No one yet seemed
suspicious.
In late
March Sir Andvbur went over to the Captal. What negotiations had passed
between the two Ragnarson never learned, but he
suspected Sir Andvbur's idealism had motivated his treachery.
The
knight's coup failed. Having foreseen trouble, and having gotten the man away from
the center of power, Ragnarson then had surrounded him with trustworthy
staffers. Few men joined Sir Andvbur when, after brief skirmishing, he fled
across Low Galmiche toward
Savernake.
Loncaric
and Savernake remained in the grip of unnatural winter. Ragnarson took the
opportunity to pinch off the depending finger of Low Galmiche and eliminate the
last rebel bastions near the Siege.
When he
could find nothing else, he wondered what had become of Mocker, Haroun, Turran,
and Valther. And worried about Rolf. Though Preshka hadn't been injured in the
dungeon confrontation, the exertion had excacerbated his lung troubles.
Yet
everything went so well that he received the bad news from Itaskia with relief.
Greyfells
partisans had driven the Trolledyngjan families over the Porthune into Kendel.
Kendel's military ran hand in glove with Itaskia's. A light horse company had
swum the river and slaughtered the raiders. Kendel had decided to send the
families on to Kavelin.
What,
Ragnarson sometimes wondered, was Elana doing? She wasn't the sort to sit and
wait.
On the
last evening of March, Ragnarson gathered his commanders to discuss the summer
campaign. Meticulously prepared maps were examined. Where to meet the enemy
became the point of contention. Ragnarson
listened, remembering an area he had seen the
previous fall.
"Here,
at Baxendala," he said suddenly, jabbing a map with a forefinger.
"We'll meet them with every man we have. Talk to the Marena Dimura. Learn
everything you can."
Before
the inevitable arguments began, he strode from the room.
The die
had been cast. All time was an arrow hurtling toward the decision at the
caravan town of Baxendala.
He went
walking the castle's outer wall, to bask in the peace of what would soon be a
chill April Fool's morning.
Soon, in
the white gown she had worn the morning they had first locked eyes, the Queen
joined him. Moonlight like trickles of silver ran through her hair, gayly. But
her eyes were sad. Ignoring the sentries, she held his hand.
"This
is the last night," she whispered, after a long silence. She stopped,
pushed her arm around his waist, stared at the moon over the Kapenrungs.
"The last time. You'll leave tomorrow. Win or lose, you won't come
back." Her voice quavered.
Ragnarson
scanned the black teeth of the enemy mountains. Was it really still winter
there? He wanted to tell her he would return, but could not. That would be a
blemish on his memory.
She had
sensed that he would always go back to Elana. Their relationship, though as
intense and fiery as a volcanic eruption, was pure romance. Romance demanded a
special breed of shared deception, of reality suspended by mutual consent...
So he
said nothing, just pulled her against his side.
"Just
one thing I ask," she said, softly, sadly. "In the dark tonight, in
bed, say my name. Whisper it to me."
He
frowned her way, puzzled.
"You
don't realize, do you? In all the time you've been here you've used it only
once. When you announced me to Sir Farace. Her Majesty. Her Majesty. Her
Highness. The Queen. Sometimes, in the night, Darling. But never Fiana. I'm
real... Make me real."
Yes, he
thought. Even when she had been no more than a conception spawned by Tarlson's
characterizations, he had felt an attraction that he had pushed off with
formalities.
"Gods!"
a nearby sentry muttered. "What's that?" Ragnarson's gaze returned to
the mountains. Beneath the moon,
over a notch
marking the approximate
location of Maisak, stood a pillar of reddish I coruscation. It coalesced into
a scarlet tower.
The world
grew silent, as if momentarily becalmed in the eye of a storm.
The
pillar intensified till all the east was aflame. A flower formed at its top.
The trunk bifurcated, took on a horrible anthropomorphism. The flower became a
head. Where eyes should have been there were two vast Stygian pools. The head
was far too large for the malformed body that bore it up. Its horns seemed to
scrape the moon as it turned slowly, glaring malevolently into the west.
The
thing's brilliance intensified till all the world seemed painted in harsh
strokes of red and black. A great dark gulf of a mouth opened in silent, evil
laughter. Then the thing faded as it had come, dying into a coruscation that
reminded Bragi of the auroras of his childhood homeland.
"Come,"
he said to the Queen when he could speak again. "You may be right. It may
be the last time either of us gives ourself freely."
Deep in
the night he spoke her name. And she, shaking as much as he, whispered from
beneath him, "Bragi, I love you."
iii) Elana and Nepanthe
On the
Auszura Littoral, Elana and Nepanthe, up late after a day of increasing,
undirected tension, released sharp cries when the Tear of Mimizan took on a
sudden, fiery life that was reflected in crimson on the eastern horizon.
iv) King Shanight
From the
Mericic Hills, at Skmon on the Anstokin-Volstokin border, Shanight of Anstokin,
restless before the dawn of attack, watched the scarlet rise in the east, a
head with its chin on the horizon. After meeting those midnight eyes he
returned to his pavilion, called off the war.
v) Mocker
In
Rohrhaste, near the site of Vodicka's defeat, Mocker suddenly erupted from an
uneasy sleep, saw scarlet beneath the moon. For one of the few times in his
life he was stricken dumb. In lieu he loaded his donkey and hurried toward
Vorgreberg.
vi) Sir Andvbur Kimberlin of Karadja
Sir
Andvbur and two hundred supporters, traveling by night to evade loyalist
patrols, paused to watch the demon coalesce over the Gap. Before it faded, half
turned back, preferring the Royal mercy. Kimberlin continued, not out of
conviction, but for fear of appearing weak before his companions.
vii) The Disciple
In the
acres-vast tent-Temple of the Disciple at Al Rhemish, a sleepy fat man moaned,
staggered to the Portal of the North. This gross, jeweled El Murid bore no
resemblance to the pale, bony, ascetic fanatic whose angry sword had scourged
the temples and reddened the sands in earlier decades. Nor was his insanity as
limited. The red sorcery stirred a mad rage. He collapsed, thrashing and
foaming at the mouth.
viii) Visigodred
At Castle
Mendalayas in north Itaskia a tall, lean insomniac paced a vast and incredibly
cluttered library. Before a fireplace a pair of leopards also paced. From a
ceiling beam a monkey watched and muttered. Between the pacer and leopards, on
a luxurious divan, a dwarf and a young beauty cuddled.
The lean
old man, sporting a long gray beard, suddenly faced south southeast, his nose
thrusting like that of a dog on point. His face became a mask of stone.
"Marco!" he snapped. "Wake up. Call the bird."
ix) Zindahjira
In the
Mountains of M'Hand, above the shores of the Seydar Sea, lay a cave in which
dwelt the being called Zindahjira the Silent. Zindahjira was anything but
silent now. The mountains shook with his rage. He did not appreciate being
involved in intrigues not his own. But by his own twisted logic he had a
responsibility to right matters in the south. When his rage settled, he called
for his messenger owls.
x) Varthlokkur
Fangdred
was an ancient fortress poised precariously atop Mount El Kabar in the Dragon's
Teeth. There, in a windowless room, tiny silver bells tinkled. A black arrow
inlaid with silver runes turned southward. In moments a tall young man,
frowning, hurried in. His haunted eyes momentarily fixed on arrow and bells.
He was
Varthlokkur, the Silent One Who Walks With Grief, sometimes called the Empire
Destroyer or the Death of Ilkazar. He was the man who had ended the reign of the
Princes Thaumaturge of Shinsan. Those
Princes remained
like trophies in
an impenetrable chamber atop Fangdred's
Wind Tower. Kings trembled at the mention of
Varthlokkur's name.
He was
old, this apparent young man. Centuries old, and burdened heavily with the
knowledge of the Power, with his guilt over
what he had wrought with the Empire. He spoke a Word. A quicksilver pool in a
shallow, wide basin ground into the top of a
table of granite shivered.
Iridescences
fluttered across its face. A portrait appeared. Varthlokkur stared at a
gargantuan, megacephalic demon whose ravenlike
feet clutched the
feet of mountains.
This
manifestation couldn't be ignored. He began his preparations.
xi) Haroun bin Yousif
The long,
cautious cavalry column was less than thirty miles from Al Rhemish when the
northern sky went scarlet. Filtering four thousand Royalists through the Lesser
Kingdoms and the Kapenrungs undetected had
been a military
feat which, meeting
success, had astonished even
its planner.
The demon
head loomed. Haroun gave the order to turn back.
xii) The Star Rider
On the
flank of a snow-deep peak high in the Kapenrungs, on a glacier that creaked and
groaned day and night, one surprised and angry old man stood between gigantic
pillars of legs and stared miles upward at scarlet horror. He spat, cursed,
turned to his winged horse. From its back he unlashed the thing known as
Windmjirnerhorn, or the Horn of the Star Rider. He caressed it, spoke to it,
glanced, nodded. The demon began to fade.
He then
sat and pondered what to do about these dangerous ad libs. O Shing was getting
out of hand.
xiii) King Vodicka
Half an
hour after the night had regained its natural darkness Volstokin's King
concluded that he had been used by greater, darker powers to play
attention-grabber while Evil slithered in to gnaw at the underbelly of the
West.
After
writing brief letters to Kavelin's Queen, his mother, and his brother, he threw
himself from the parapet of his prison tower.
FIFTEEN: Baxendala
i) The site
Baxendala
was a prosperous town of two thousand twenty-five miles west of Maisak. Its
prosperity was due to its being the last or first chance for commerical vices
for the caravans. The mountain passage was long and trying. Ragnarson had
chosen to fight there because of topography.
The
townsite had once marked the western limit of the huge glacier that had cut the
pass. The valley, that became the Gap, there narrowed to a two-mile-wide,
steep-sided canyon, the floor of which, near the town, was piled with glacial
leavings.
Baxendala
itself was built against the north flank of a sugarloaf hill half a mile wide,
two long, and two hundred feet high, astride a low ridge that ran to the flank
of Seidentop, a steep, brush-wooly mountain constricting the north wall of the
canyon. The River Ebeler ran around the south side of the loaf where the
valley, in a long, lazy curve, had been dug a bit deeper, and, because of
barriers a dozen miles farther west, had formed a shallow marsh three-quarters
of a mile wide. The marsh lay hard against both the sugarloaf and the steep
southern wall of the valley. A narrow strip of brushy, firm ground
ran below the southern face. It could be easily held by a small force.
Atop the
sugarloaf, commanding a good eastern view, stood a small fortress, Karak
Strabger. From it Ragnarson could follow every detail of battle. By anchoring
his flanks on Seidentop and Baxendala, along the ridge, he could defend a space
little more than half a mile wide. There was no more defensible site to the
west, and but one equaling it farther east. And Sir Andvbur, having fought
there last autumn, knew that ground better
than he.
Ragnarson
descended on the town two weeks after the night of the demon. The Strabger
family fled so hurriedly they left breakfast half-cooked in the castle kitchen.
The rebel forces were training farther east, near the snow line. Three days
after Bragi's arrival an attempt was made to dislodge him. Baron Berlich led
the rebel knights into another Lieneke. His attack collapsed under a shower of
Itaskian arrows. Berlich himself was slain.
The
survivors, to Ragnarson's dismay, suffered an attack of rationality. When they
selected a new commander they chose the man he believed most dangerous, Sir
Andvbur Kimberlin.
Kimberlin
opted for Fabian tactics. He took up a defensive position at the site of his
previous year's battle. His patrols tried to lure Ragnarson into attack. Bragi
ignored them.
Though
Kimberlin's force, at eight thousand, was the largest Ragnarson had yet faced,
he was more concerned with the sorcery-rich army the Captal would bring out of
Maisak.
Bragi
waited, skirmished, fortified, scouted, husbanded his resources. He constantly
reminded his officers of the need to stand firm here. To, if necessary, endure
the heaviest casualties. The enemy would be stopped at Baxendala, or not at
all. The west depended on them. There would be no stopping Shinsan if this
stand failed.
ii) The waiting
Ragnarson
stood on the parapet of Karak Strabger's lone tower and surveyed the power that
was, for the moment, his. He had twenty-five thousand Kaveliners, plus the men
he had brought south. In the west, on the horizons and beyond, great clouds of
dust hung in the spring haze. Surprising allies were hurrying to join him.
One
cloud, on the caravan route, marked Shanight of Anstokin with the regiments
raised to invade Volstokin. North of him came Jostrand of Volstokin and three
thousand puzzled veterans of Lake Berberich and Vodicka's defeat. In
Heidershied, rushing in forty-mile marches, was Prince Raithel of Altea, a
hard-driving old warrior who had won glory and honor during the wars. Ragnarson
hoped Raithel would arrive in time. His ten thousand were the best soldiers in
the Lesser Kingdoms. He had heard there were troops on the move in Tamerice and
Ruderin and kingdoms farther away.
This
curdling of the Lesser Kingdoms into a one-faced force with chin thrust
belligerently eastward had begun the night of the red demon.
The
sudden power and responsibility awed Ragnarson. Princes and kings were coming
to be commanded by a man who had been but a farmer a year ago...
There
were others who awed him more than Shanight, Jostrand, or Raithel.
Beside
the sugarloaf, above Baxendala, stood a dozen tents set off by ropes. One housed
his old friend Count Visigodred of Mendalayas, another Haroun's dread
(acquaintance, Zindahjira. The denizens of the others he knew only by repute:
Keirle the Ancient; Barco Crecelius of Hellin Daimiel; Stojan Dusan from Prost
Kamenets; Gromachi, the Egg of God; The Hermit of Ormrebotn; Boershig Abresch
from Songer in Ringerike; Klages Dunivin; Serkes Holdgraver of the Fortress of
Frozen Fire; and the Thing With Many Eyes, from the shadowed deeps of the
Temple of Jiankoplos in Simballawein.
One tent stood
alone, as if the others had crowded away. Before it stood a battered Imperial
standard. Within lurked the man whose capital-hopping had started so many
armies toward Baxendala, whose name frightened children into good behavior and
made grown men glance over their shoulders. Varthlokkur.
His
appearance guaranteed the gravity of the conflict. The high and the mighty,
from Simballawein to Iwa Skolovda, would hold all else in abeyance till they
knew what was afoot.
Even the
Greyfells party, Ragnarson had heard, had joined the truce.
Ragnarson
had mixed feelings about Varthlokkur's presence. The man could, without a
doubt, be an asset. But what about old grudges? Varthlokkur owed himself and
Mocker.
But
Mocker, who had most to fear, was in and out of the wizard's tent constantly,
when not hiding from soldiers he had bilked with crooked dice.
Ragnarson
smiled weakly. Mocker was incorrigible. A middle-aged adolescent.
He spied
signal smoke up the Gap. Heliograph operators bustled about him. He returned to
the war room he had set up in the castle's great hall.
While
awaiting the report, he asked Kildragon, "How's Rolf?" Preshka had
insisted on coming east.
"The
same. He'll never heal if he won't take time out." "And the
evacuation?" He had been trying to get civilians to leave the area.
"About
hit the limit. The rest mean to stay no matter what."
"Guess
we've done what we could. Can't force people... Colonel Kiriakos?"
He had
surveyed the man's work from the parapet. He and Phiambolos were working hard
to complicate Shinsan's attack.
Kiriakos
was the sort who, finding a pot of gold, would worry about getting a hernia
hauling it away. "Too slow. I won't get done if you don't give me more
men." His projects were straining the army already. Trenches, traps, fortifications,
cheveaux-de-fris, a pontoon across the marsh a few miles west, and finding raw
materials, were devouring hundreds of thousands of man-hours each day. But
Kiriakos was a bureaucrat born. There was no project that couldn't be done
bigger and better if only he were given more money and men...
Am I
getting old? Ragnarson wondered. What happened to my penchant for motion? His
cavalry commanders had been asking too. Shinsan's was an army mainly infantry
in orientation, with little missile weaponry. But Sir Andvbur was out there...
All he could say was that he felt right fighting positionally.
A
Sedlmayrese sergeant came from the tower, drew Bragi aside. "Captain
Altenkirk," he whispered, "says he's taken prisoners. The men called
Turran and Valther, and a woman. The Captain thinks she's the one you saw at
Maisak."
Ragnarson
frowned. A windy message for heliograph, susceptible of error. But justified if
true. They had captured Mist? How?
"Thank
you. Send 'Well done.' And keep it quiet." He retreated to a corner to
think. So many possibilities ... But he would know the truth when Altenkirk
came in.
He would
have to take precautions. He headed for the wizards' compound.
iii) Prisoners
Altenkirk
had taken no chances. He brought his prisoners in gagged, bound, and
blindfolded, unable to twitch, inside the large wicker baskets farmers filled
with grain and hung from their rafters to beat the rats and mice. Each was
litter-borne by prisoners from Kimberlin's army and surrounded by Marena Dimura
ready to destroy baskets and bearers in an instant. Each litter was piled with
oil-soaked faggots. Horsemen with torches rode nearby.
In other
circumstances Ragnarson would have been
amused. "Think you took enough
precautions?" he asked.
"I
should've killed them," Altenkirk replied. "It's got to be a
trick..."
"Maybe.
Let's let the witchmen have them."
The baskets
were grounded before the sorcerers. Soldiers who could do so absented
themselves. Zindah-jira, the Egg of God, and the Thing With Many Eyes failed
customary standards of what was human.
"What's
the smell?" Ragnarson asked Visigodred, near whom he had positioned
himself for his nerve's sake.
"The
Thing's project. You'll see."
"Uhn."
They had to make everything a mystery. He nodded to Altenkirk. "Turran
first."
Altenkirk
cautiously pried the lid off a basket. Sorcerers tensed like foxes waiting at a
rabbit hole.
But
Turran had been confined so long that he needed help getting out. Ragnarson
went to the man, removed his gag. He beckoned Visigodred.
To
Turran, "I'm sorry. Altenkirk's a cautious man."
"Understand."
"Water,"
Visigodred said, offering a cup. Turran drained it. While Bragi and a soldier
supported Turran, Visigodred rubbed his legs. To Altenkirk the wizard said,
"Let the others out. They'll cause no trouble."
There was
a stir just before Mist came forth. Ragnarson turned. His eyes met the Queen's.
So. She had ignored his advice again, had come to join the final battle. With
perfect timing, he thought. Her eyes, on Mist, were hard and jealous.
"All
I need," he mumbled, "is for Elana to turn up now."
A long
draught of wine gave Turran a little life. He asked for a physician, to examine
his brother, then admonished, "I thought we were on the same side."
And, after a pause, "She's come over."
Hum and
buzz. Sorcerers' heads nodded together. Visigodred, who had a relationship with
Mist that seemed almost fatherly, fussed round the woman like a hen.
"Did
you ever see such a mantrap?" Ragnarson mumbled to Preshka, who, despite
continued ill health, had come to investigate the commotion.
"It's
obscene. No woman ought to look like that." Turran gained more life.
"They'll be here soon. They started bringing troops through last
week."
"Uhn?" Ragnarson's suspicions hadn't died completely.
"Let's hear about it."
"We
couldn't use the back stairs," he said, after recounting the confrontation
in the Captal's library, "so we picked up Brad Red Hand and tried the
hallways..." "You joined forces?"
"No
choice. O Shing's people would've killed us all. Enemy of my enemy, you know.
We picked up Brad and went through the halls to the stairs Derran had used to
reach the old man's floor. But it opened in a hall already occupied by O
Shing's men. We had to fight through. Valther picked up his wound there. Derran
was killed. Kerth, the Captal, and the little girl were captured. Brad tore a
muscle in his left arm. We got through, but we couldn't save anybody but
ourselves."
"And
Mist? She couldn't use a spell or two?" "Colonel, there were six men
in that room. Three were Tervola. You know what that means? We tried. We killed
the soldiers. She barely handled the sorcerers. But when it settled out, we
couldn't carry the wounded. I was lucky to get Valther out. And the child
wouldn't leave the old man. If there was anything that could've been
done..."
"I
wasn't criticizing." He had had to leave people behind too. He knew the
spear thrusts of guilt that drove to the heart of one's being.
"We
hoped to reach the main gate or the Captal's creatures, but the fight gave O
Shing's men time to cut us off. The only escape was the caverns. It may've been
my memory or their sorcery, but for a long time we couldn't find a way out.
Every passage we took led back to Maisak. Each time we returned something more
grim had happened. They tortured Kerth till he told all he knew about Haroun.
They enchanted the Captal and girl into being cooperative. They've done the
same to the rebel captains. We kept stealing food and trying to find a way out.
When they started bringing troops through, I knew I couldn't put off leaving my
body anymore. It'd become imperative that I get Mist to you."
"And
Brad?"
"They
detected the sorcery. Came hunting. His bad shoulder betrayed him. They got him
before Mist could drive them off."
"And
Mist? Is she a refugee? Does she want help to regain her throne? I won't help
her. There's no way I'll do anything to benefit the Dread Empire. I will help
destroy it. It's like a poisonous snake. Any good it does is incidental to its
deadliness."
"I
think," Turran said softly, "that's she's run out of ambition. O
Shing's successes have crushed her." He nodded her way. She was fussing
over Valther. "There's her subliminatory device."
"Ah?"
"I
don't know how long it'll last. Long enough for us to benefit, though."
"I
can't ask much more." With great reluctance, Ragnarson took his eyes off
Mist, studied the assembled sorcerers. Each indicated he believed Turran. Only
Varthlokkur expressed reservations, and those weren't related to Mist's turn of
coat.
"Power
won't affect this battle's outcome," he said. "The divinations are
shadowy, but they suggest its result will depend on the courage and stamina of
soldiers, not on any efforts of my ilk." He seemed mildly puzzled.
Varthlokkur
knew his business. He was probably right. But Ragnarson was puzzled too. He
could not see how, with so much thaumaturgic might moving toward collision,
massive destruction could be avoided. "See if you can get this
straightened out," he told Preshka, then went to welcome the Queen to
Baxendala.
iv) The enemy arrives
Sir
Andvbur's rebels came down the canyon like leaves driven by an autumn wind,
without organization, whipping this way and that, mixing units inseparably.
Before and among them fled bands of Ragnarson's horsemen and Marena Dimura. Signal
smokes rose rapidly nearer, climbing toward a cloud of darkness driving down
from Maisak like the grasping hand of doom. Sir Andvbur's people pelted against
Ragnarson's defenses in such disorder that his own men became mildly infected.
He had a brisk afternoon's work keeping order. Night fell without the true
enemy appearing. But his campfires, as they sprang into being, were disturbing
in their numbers. Ragnarson got little sleep. He stayed up studying a blizzard
of conflicting reports.
By
morning it had sorted itself out. The Captal and his Kaveliners had moved to
Ragnarson's extreme right, beyond the marsh, where Blackfang and Kildragon held
the narrows. Sir Andvbur's thousands had taken positions against the flank of
Seidentop, facing the mercenary regiments from High Crag. Shinsan held the
center, facing Prince Raithel's Altean veterans.
A
quarter-mile behind the front line, which was sixteen thousand strong,
Ragnarson had drawn up a more numerous but potentially weaker second line.
Volstokin he had anchored against Seidentop, in touch with the fortifications
and heavy weapons Colonel Phiambolos had installed there. In the center were
the Kaveliners, his hand-picked veterans scattered among them as cadre. On the
right, their backs against Baxendala, lay Anstokin's army. They maintained
close contact with the ramparts and trenches Tuchol Kiriakos had constructed
between level ground and Karak Strabger's wall. The main engagement Ragnarson
meant to be infantry against infantry, the lines holding while heavy engines on
the flanks and bowmen behind the lines decimated the enemy. Only two thousand
horsemen, the best, did he allow to retain their animals. These he stationed
west of Baxendala, out of view behind the slope running to Seidentop.
Dawn was
a creeping thing, a dark tortoise dragging in from the east and never quite
seeming to arrive. But gradual visibility came to the valley.
Ragnarson,
the Queen, Turran, Mist, Varthlokkur, Colonels Phiambolos and Kiriakos, runners
and heliograph men crowded the top of Karak Strabger's lonely tower. When O
Shing's camp became visible, Ragnar-son's heart fell. He beckoned Mist.
Shinsan
was in formation already. Mist peered into the morning haze. A small, sharp
intake of breath. "Four legions," she said throatily. "He's
brought four legions. The Eighth. On the right. His left. The Third. The Sixth.
Oh. And I thought Chin mine body and soul." The remaining legion stood in
reserve behind Shinsan's center. "The First. The Imperial Standard. The best
of the best."
Her
knuckles whitened as she squeezed the stone of the battlements.
"The
best," she repeated. "And all four at full strength. He's made a fool
of me."
Bragi
wasn't disappointed. He hadn't expected good news. But he had hoped O Shing would
make a smaller showing. "He's here himself?"
She
nodded, pointed. "There. Behind the First. You can see the tower. He wants
to watch our destruction from a high place."
Ragnarson
turned. "Colonel Phiambolos, relay the word to Altenkirk." The
engineer departed for Seidentop, "Varthlokkur? You've seen enough?"
The
wizard nodded. "We'll begin. But I doubt we'll do any good." He
departed. "Colonel Kiriakos?"
The
Colonel clicked his heels and half bowed. "Gods be with you, sir." He
left to assume command of the castle and sugarloaf. "Turran?"
The man
shrugged. "You've done all you could. It's up to the Fates."
"Your
Majesty, everything's ready." She nodded coolly, regally. There was the
slightest strain between them because, after her journey from Vorgreberg, he
had spent the night in battle preparations. "Now we wait." He glanced
at O Shing's tower, willing it to begin.
Though he
concealed it, he didn't think he had a chance. Not against four legions, nearly
twenty-five thousand easterners. With so many O Shing might not commit his
auxiliaries...
But he
did. At some unseen signal Sir Andvbur threw his full weight against the
mercenary regiments, all his people fighting afoot.
"That
man," said Turran, "needs hanging. He learns too fast."
The
mercenaries, though better fighters, were hard-pressed till Phiambolos's
engines found the range.
After an
hour, Ragnarson asked Turran, "What's he doing? It's obvious that he can't
break through."
"Maybe
trying to weaken them for the legions.Or draw them out of line."
Ragnarson
glanced toward the mountains. The dark cloud from Maisak was fading.
"They'll let us have the sun in our eyes." He had hoped they would
overlook that.
Mist
interjected, "He's buying time to ready a sorcery."
And
Turran, "There goes a wagonload of the Thing's poison." In time
Visigodred had admitted that the foul stench from the sorcerers' enclave was
caused by their distillation of a drink to be served weary troops on the
fighting line. There was little if any magic involved, but the liquor would
combine the encouraging effects of alcohol with a drug that staved off
exhaustion. Little sorceries like that, Ragnarson thought, might be more
important than the ground-shakers.
"Marshal,"
said the Queen, "you have smoke across the marsh."
Bragi
turned. It was Haaken's signal. He allowed himself a small grin. "Good.
Runner." A man presented himself. "Tell Sir Farace to cross the
pontoon."
A key
adjunct to his plans, hastily developed during the night, after the enemy's
dispositions had become clear, was developing perfectly. Blackfang and
Kildragon had laid a trap. The Captal had been lured in.
"The
witchery begins," said Mist. Arm spear-straight, she indicated a mote of
pinkish light at the foot of O Shing's tower. "The Gosik of Aubochonagain."Aweand
horror filled her voice. "In the flesh. The man's mad! There's no way to
control it..."
"Kimberlin's
breaking off," said Turran.
Ragnarson
had noticed. "This's the critical point," he said, looking down at
the still untested Alteans. "Will they hold when they realize what's
happening?"
"Back!"
Mist snapped. "I need room!" The pink became scarlet flame; from it
rose dense red smoke. In moments, within the smoke, an immense horned head with
Stygian eyes formed. This thing was no moonscraping monster such as had loomed
over the Kapenrungs, but Bragi guessed it would stand a hundred yards tall. It
seemed to grow from the earth itself.
Mist
stood with arms outstretched and head thrown back, screaming in a tongue so
liquid that Ragnarson wasn't sure she was using words. A strong chill wind
began to blow, whipping her hair and garments.
He
checked his tame sorcerers.
As the
Gosik took on awesome solidity, the twelve hurled their counter-weapons. Bolts
of lightning. Spears of light. Balls of fire in weird and changing colors.
Stenches that enveloped the tower. A misty thing the size of several elephants
that coalesced between the armies and trailed bloody slaughter through immobile
legions before attaching its hundred tentacles and dozen beaked mouths to one
of the Gosik's legs...
Mist
brought her hands together sharply. Down the canyon, echoing from wall to wall,
ran a deafening, endless peal of thunder. Over the Gosik a diadem of lights
appeared, sparks in rainbowed rings racing angrily. The diadem began to fall.
Ragnarson
wasn't sure, but from its enclosing circle, it seemed, a nebulous face as ugly
as the Gosik's glared down, swelled till all the interior was a gap through
which a hungry mouth prepared to feed.
A touch
of shadow crossed the parapet. A few hundred feet up, a lonely eagle patrolled,
above Mist's unnatural wind, apparently unconcerned with the human follies
below. For an instant Bragi envied the bird its freedom and unconcern. Then...
He
released a small, sharp gasp. For an instant the eagle flickered and was an
eagle no longer. It became a man and winged horse far higher than he had
thought, almost above visual discrimination. He turned to ask Turran's opinion.
Turran
had missed it. Everyone had. All attention was on the Gosik.
Every
magick in the valley had perished.
The Gosik
itself came apart like a crumbling brick building, chunks and dusts falling in
a rain that masked O Shing's tower. It bellowed louder than Mist's thunder had
done.
Turran
groaned, clawed at his chest, staggered. Ragnarson stared, thinking it was his
heart.
Mist
screamed, a cry of pain and deprivation. She fell to her knees, beat her
forehead against parapet stone.
"It's
gone," Turran groaned. "The Power. It's gone."
The Queen
tried to stop Mist. "Help me!" she snapped at the messengers.
Ragnarson
leaned over the parapet. His wizards appeared to have gone insane. Several had
collapsed. Most were flopping about like men in the throes of the falling
sickness. The Thing sped round and round in a tight circle, chasing its own
forked tail. Only Varthlokkur seemed unaffected, though he might have been a
statue, so still was he as he stared at the Gosik of Aubochon.
Ragnarson
looked up again. The eagle slid toward Maisak, to all appearances a raptor
going about its business. He frowned. That old man again. Who was he? What? Not
a god, but certainly a Power above any other the world knew.
Ragnarson's
companions remained unaware of anything but the sudden vacuum of sorcery. For
Turran and Mist it was a loss beyond description, almost a theft of the soul.
v) Opening round
O Shing
wasted no time. The legions moved. High on the Thing's brew and Bragi's quickly
spread tale that western sorcery had conquered the eastern, the troops waited
with renewed confidence.
Shinsan
advanced behind a screen of Sir Andvbur's infantry, the rebels more driven than
leading the assault. Theirs was the task of neutralizing the traps. Their casualties were
heavy. Ragnarson's bowmen had
a tremendous stock of arrows, and easy targets.
Before
the lines met, Ragnarson's troops sprang one of their surprises. He had had the
Alteans armed with javelins, a tactic unseen since Imperial times. Their shower
reassured his troops of the foe's mortality.
"Runner!"
Ragnarson snapped. He sent orders to ready the second line.
"So
much for being Shinsan's ally," Bragi muttered. Several thousand rebels,
between his own and Shinsan's lines, were being cut down by friend and foe.
Bragi's
first line held better than he had expected. He blessed the Thing.
The
Alteans held the Third. The flanking legions, under merciless bombardment from
Phiambolos' and Kiriakos' engines, had increasing difficulty maintaining
formation.
The enemy
commander sent Sir Andvbur to clear Seidentop. Karak Strabger he would not be
able to reach unless the Alteans broke. Kimberlin's men got entangled in nasty
little battles in brushy ravines and around Phiambolos' fortifications.
Ragnarson
had his heliographers send a message. Altenkirk and a thousand Marena
Dimura were hidden on the slopes east of Seidentop. They were to take
the rebels and Sixth Legion in the rear. Ragnarson didn't expect them to do
more than keep the enemy off balance. What Ragnarson wanted most was to compel
O Shing to commit his reserve. The First Legion, waiting patiently before their
emperor's tower, would be the key.
The first
line wouldn't compel its commitment. The Altean left had begun to waver. He
ordered his archers withdrawn behind the second line. He didn't want them lost
in a sudden collapse. He then sent messages reminding his second-line
commanders that under no circumstances were they to leave their positions to
aid the first line.
The
Alteans yielded slowly. The enemy wedged open their junction with the
mercenaries. Altenkirk attacked. The fighting round Seidentop grew bloody. The
Marena Dimura, high on the Thing's brew, refused to be driven off till they had
taken terrible casualties. They, too, did better than Ragnarson had expected.
They forced Sir Andvbur to abandon his assault. And they gave better than they
got. Kimberlin's troops were unable to pursue them. But in the meantime the
Alteans had gotten split off the mercenaries. The commander of the Third Legion
was ready to roll up both halves of the line.
Ragnarson
expected the reserve legion to drive through the gap, against his second line.
But no. O Shing held it.
"They're
burning the bridge," Turran said from behind him. The man had recovered,
though now he seemed a little insubstantial.
Bragi
turned. Yes. Smoke rose from the pontoon. Haaken had either lost or won his
part of the battle. There would be no knowing which for a long time yet. He
wished he had arranged some signal. But he hadn't wanted any false hopes raised
or despair set loose.
The
mercenary regiments began to crumble. Crowding Seidentop for its supporting
fire, they withdrew. Prince Raithel tried to do the same, but had more
difficulty. The fighting washed up the foot of the sugarloaf. Kiriakos couldn't
give him much support.
Ragnarson
glanced at the sun. Only four hours of light left. If Shinsan took too long,
the battle would stretch into a second day. For that he wasn't prepared.
Clearly
victorious, the legions disengaged, puzzling Ragnarson. Then he understood. O
Shing would send the fresh legion against the center of the second line while
the third backed off to the reserve position.
For a
time the battlefield was clear. Bragi was awed by the carnage. It would be long
remembered. There must have been twenty thousand bodies on the field, about
evenly distributed. The majority of the enemy fallen were rebels.
Sickening.
Ragnarson loathed the toe-to-toe slugfest. But there was no choice. A war of
maneuver meant enemy victory.
O Shing
allowed the legions an hour's rest. Ragnarson didn't interfere.
Before,
the numbers had been slightly in the enemy's favor. This time they would be strongly
in his. But his men would be greener, more likely to break.
Two and a
half hours till sunset. If they held, but Haaken couldn't carry out his
mission, could he put anything together for the morrow?
It began
anew. The First Legion drove its silent fury against Kaveliners who outnumbered
it three to one. The flanking legions held Anstokin and Volstokin while strong
elements of each turned on Seidentop and Karak Strabger.
The
Thing's false courage continued to work. The Kaveliners stood and continued
believing their commander was invincible.
Ragnarson
turned away after an hour. Even with the support of the most intense arrow
storm Ahring could generate, Shinsan was getting the best of it.
And,
redoubt by redoubt, Kiriakos and Phiambolos were being forced to yield their
fortifications. By nightfall Karak Strabger would be cut off. Seidentop would
be lost. Captured engines would be turned on the castle come morning.
Then he
caught moving glitter at the eastern end of the marsh. It was Sir Farace and
the horse, come round the marsh through the narrow strip where Haaken and
Reskird had pulled a near repeat of Lake Berberich.
At first
O Shing was unconcerned, perhaps thinking the column was the Captal's returning.
H ow long would it last?
A while.
Long enough for Sir Farace and Blackfang to ford the Ebeler. O Shing and his
Tervola were intent on the slaughter before them. Anstokin was being driven
into the streets of Baxendala. The Kaveliners were being decimated, though the
arrow storm was wreaking its havoc too. Volstokin was desperately trying to
retain contact with Phiambolos, who had begun evacuating Seidentop. A hundred
pillars of smoke rose from pyres marking abandoned engines. The main battle was
lost.
"Turran."
Bragi glanced at the sun. "Can we hold till dark? Would they keep on
afterwards? Or wait till dawn to finish it?"
"We
can hold. But you may have to send the mercenaries and Alteans back in."
"Right."
He sent orders to Prince Raithel to stand by.
Peering
toward Sir Farace, he saw that Haaken and Reskird had brought their infantry.
Blackfang had had good reason for burning the pontoon. If Sir Farace failed,
there would be no one to hold the right bank. Trolledyngjans. Proud men. Fools
eager, even facing incredible odds, to balance their earlier defeat at Maisak.
The
knights formed hurriedly, in two long ranks. O Shing's generals finally
awakened, began to form the reserve legion facing them.
Shrieking
trumpets carried over the uproar around Karak Strabger; the best knights of
four kingdoms trotted toward the best infantry in the world. Haaken, Reskird,
and their infantry ran at the stirrups of the second wave.
Had he
known there would be no magic, Ragnarson reflected, he would have chosen a
knights' battle. It wasn't a form of warfare with which the easterners could
easily cope.
The first
wave went to a canter, then a full charge, hit before the Third Legion had
finished reforming.
What
followed was a classic demonstration of why heavy cavalry had become the
preferred shock weapon of western armies. The horsemen plowed through the enemy
like heavy ships through waves, their lances shattering the front ranks, then
their swords and maces smashing down from the height advantage.
Had the
Shinsaners been anyone else they would have been routed. But these men stood
and silently died. Like automatons they killed horses to bring knights down
where their heavier armor would be a disadvantage.
The
second wave hit, then the infantry. Without that second wave, Ragnarson
reflected, the first might have been lost simply because the enemy didn't have
the sense to run. They would have stood, been slaughtered, and have slowly
turned the thing around ...
If the
legionnaires would not panic, O Shing would. With trumpets and flags he began
screaming for help.
Altenkirk
and his Marena Dimura, now completely
cut off, launched a suicide attack on Kimberlin, made
sure the rebels did nothing to save the eastern
emperor.
"We'll survive
the day," Ragnarson
said, spirits soaring. He drew
his sword, gathered his shield. "Time to counter-attack."
The Tervola were trying to disengage forces to aid their emperor, who was in
grave danger.
As he and
his staff howled out the castle gate to join Kiriakos, Ragnarson saw that Sir
Farace had shifted his attack. While the stricken Third Legion ordered itself
around O Shing, Volstokin's seneschal had wheeled his lines and charged the
First from behind.
Ragnarson's
immediate reaction was anger. The man should have gone for checkmate... But he
calmed himself. The knight had seen more clearly than he. O Shing was only a
man. This battle was no individual's whim, it was a playout of a nation's
aspirations. The Tervola could and would replace O Shing if necessary, and
could win without him. With few exceptions their loyalties were to ideas, not
men.
The sun
had reached the peaks of the Kapenrungs. The slaughter continued shifting in
favor of the west. The Sixth and Eighth tried to close a trap but were too
weary and heavily engaged to act quickly enough. Sir Farace withdrew before the
jaws closed and formed for yet another charge. Before dark all four legions had
suffered the fury of the western knighthood, the sort of attack Breitbarth had
meant to hurl against Ragnarson at Lieneke. The assault on Baxendala had been
broken.
Shinsan
disengaged in good order. Ragnarson sent riders to Haaken and Reskird, ordering
them to recross the Ebeler before they were trapped. Altenkirk he ordered off
Kimberlin. Sir Farace he had stand off from the withdrawal. The mercenaries and
Alteans, who had had a respite, he kept in contact. With the remnants of one
mercenary regiment he launched a night assault on the rebels.
He had
judged their temper correctly. Most of the common soldiers yielded without
fighting. Sir Andvbur accepted the inevitable.
Though it
meant straining men already near collapse, Ragnarson kept the pressure on
Shinsan throughout the night, allowing only his horsemen to rest. All of them,
even those who had fought afoot. With the rebel knights out he could afford to
launch cavalry attacks.
O Shing
resumed operations at dawn, withdrawing
toward Maisak with the First Legion in rearguard,
masking his main force with trenches dug during the night. The situation left
Ragnarson in a quandary. As soon as he sent his horse in pursuit, the First,
evidently rested, came out to challenge his exhausted infantry. He didn't want
to settle for the single legion the enemy seemed willing to sacrifice. There
was no predicting when the Power would return. If it did do so soon, Shinsan
could still turn it around.
Both
sides had been drained. Nearly ten thousand Shinsaners had fallen. Virtually
all the rebels were dead or captured. Haaken had sent word that the Captal and
his pretender were in hand. And Ragnarson feared his own losses, not yet
determined, would include more than half his force.
His
allies from Altea, Anstokin, and Volstokin refused to join the pursuit. The
Kaveliners and mercenaries grumbled when he made the suggestion, but had less
choice. He compromised. They would advance slowly, maintaining light contact,
till O Shing had evacuated Kavelin. His allies undertook the destruction of the
Imperial Legion.
vi) Campaign's end
Approaching
stealthily, cautiously, unexpectedly, the Royalist forces of Haroun bin Yousif
came to a Maisak virtually undefended. In a swift, surprise night attack they
carried the gate and swept the defenders into eternity. In the deep dungeons
they found the portals through which Shinsan's soldiers had come. Bin Yousif
led a force through, surprised and destroyed a small fortress near Liaontung,
in the Dead Empire.
Returning,
he destroyed the portals, then prepared surprises for O Shing's return. If he
returned.
He did,
skirmishing with Ragnarson's troops all the way. The would-be emperor, trying
to salvage control of the Gap, threw his beaten legions at Maisak's walls.
Soldiers
of Shinsan did not question, did not retreat. For three bloody days they attacked
and died. Without their masters' magicks they were only men. As many died there
as had at Baxendala.
When O
Shing broke off, Ragnarson, with Haroun, harried him to the ruins of Gog-Ahlan.
There
Turran told Bragi, "There's no percentage in pushing him any more. The
Power's returning."
Reluctantly,
Ragnarson turned back toward Kavelin.
SIXTEEN: Shadows of Death
i) New directions and vanishing allies
When
Bragi went looking for Haroun, his old friend was gone. Side by side they had
harried O Shing, moving too swiftly to visit, then the Royalists had
evaporated.
When
Bragi returned, autumn was settling on Vorgreberg. For the first time in years
there was no foreboding lying over the capital. The rebellion was dead. All but
a few of its leaders had been caught. But recognition of Gaia-Lange and/or
Carolan remained unsettled.
In
Ragnarson's absence the Queen had restructured the Thing along lines proposed
by the scholars of Hellin Daimiel, adding commons drawn from among Wessons,
Marena Dimura, and Siluro. Final judgmental authority had been vested in three
consuls, one elected by the commons, another by the nobility. The third was the
Queen herself. Before he reached Baxendala returning, Bragi learned that he had
a painful decision to make.
Representatives
of the commons met him in the Gap and begged him to become publican consul.
He was
still worrying it when he reached Vorgreberg.
The
crowds had turned out. He accepted the accolades glumly. Haaken and Reskird grinned,
shouted back, clowned. His soldiers wasted no time getting themselves lost in
taverns and willing arms.
Sourly,
he entered Castle Krief.
And there
she was again, in the same place, wearing the same clothing...
And Elana
was with her. Elana, Nepanthe, and Mocker.
Haaken
leaned close. "Remember the tale of Soren Olag Bjornson's wife." It
was a Trolledyngjan folk story about the vicissitudes of an unfaithful husband.
Bragi
started. If Haaken knew, the liaison might be common knowledge.
Maybe a
consulship would keep him too busy to get in trouble with either woman.
ii) The new life
Ragnarson
accepted the consulship, retained the title Marshal, and received a vote of
generalship from High Crag. His most difficult task was integrating his
arrogant, overbearing Trolledyngjan refugees into Kaveliner society, and, with
the Queen, making compensation to the mercenary regiments. Ravelin's finances
were a shambles.
There
came a time when final action had to be taken in the matters of Sir Andvburand
the Captal of Savernake. To Ragnarson's regret, Kimberlin had to be hanged. The
Captal was more cooperative. After a long conversation with the Queen,
concerning Carolan, he was allowed pen, parchment, and poison.
The best
physician in Hellin Daimiel was brought in to attend Rolf Preshka. But the man
neither improved nor worsened. The physician believed it was a matter of mind,
not disease.
Time
eased Bragi's longing for the Itaskian grant. The War Minister wrote that it
would be a long time before he could come back. The Greyfells party had grown
no weaker. Meantime, Bevold Lif continued his improve- ments. Ragnarson
began looking forward to playing big fish in his new small pool.
There
would be a respite before bin Yousif again maneuvered him into the role of
stalking horse.
iii) One pretender
Crown
Prince Gaia-Lange was playing in his grandfather's garden when the hawkfaced
man appeared. The boy was puzzled, but felt no fear. He wondered how the dark
man had gotten past the guards. "Who're you?"
"Like
you, my prince, a king without a throne." The lean man knelt, kissed the
boy on both cheeks. "I'm sorry. There're things more important than
princes." He rose, vanished as silently as he had come. The boy's hands
touched where lips had touched. His expression remained puzzled.
Hands and
expression were still there when his heart beat its last.
It was
another Allernmas evening.
iv) Party kill
Shadow
from shadow, a lean dark man momentarily appeared in the room where the wine
for the leaders of the Greyfells party, meeting before seizing Itaskia's
throne, had been decanted. He dribbled golden droplets into each decanter.
Itaskia's
morticians were busy for a week.
v) Autumn's child
Like a
black ghost that had come on the wings of the blizzard moaning about Castle
Krief, the dark man passed the chambers of the Marshal and his wife, the
chambers of the Queen, and entered the door of the Princess' room. Drowsy
guards never knew he had passed. The child slept in candlelight, golden hair
sprayed over cerulean pillows. One small hand protruded from beneath the
covers. Into it he emptied a tiny box. The spider was no larger than a pea.
The dark
man pricked her palm with a pin. She made a fist.
Death
came gently, silently. She never wakened.
He murmured, "October's
baby, autumn's child, child of the Dread Empire. Fare you better in the
Shadowland." For an instant, before he snuffed the candle and departed, a
deep sadness ghosted across his face. One tear rolled down a dark, leathery
cheek, betraying the man inside.